Schedule 6 contains amendments relating to the Speakership of the House of Lords.
which the Lord Chancellor considers necessary or expedient for the purposes of, in consequence of, or for giving full effect to, provision made under subsection (1).
Yn ddilys o 01/10/2005
Part 4 U.K.Judicial appointments and discipline
Yn ddilys o 03/04/2006
Chapter 1U.K.Commission and Ombudsman
61The Judicial Appointments CommissionU.K.
(1)There is to be a body corporate called the Judicial Appointments Commission.
(2)Schedule 12 is about the Commission.
62Judicial Appointments and Conduct OmbudsmanU.K.
(1)There is to be a Judicial Appointments and Conduct Ombudsman.
(2)Schedule 13 is about the Ombudsman.
Chapter 2U.K.Appointments
General provisionsU.K.
Yn ddilys o 03/04/2006
63Merit and good characterU.K.
(1)Subsections (2) and (3) apply to any selection under this Part by the Commission or a selection panel (“the selecting body”).
(2)Selection must be solely on merit.
(3)A person must not be selected unless the selecting body is satisfied that he is of good character.
Yn ddilys o 03/04/2006
64Encouragement of diversityU.K.
(1)The Commission, in performing its functions under this Part, must have regard to the need to encourage diversity in the range of persons available for selection for appointments.
(2)This section is subject to section 63.
65Guidance about proceduresU.K.
(1)The Lord Chancellor may issue guidance about procedures for the performance by the Commission or a selection panel of its functions of—
(a)identifying persons willing to be considered for selection under this Part, and
(b)assessing such persons for the purposes of selection.
(2)The guidance may, among other things, relate to consultation or other steps in determining such procedures.
(3)The purposes for which guidance may be issued under this section include the encouragement of diversity in the range of persons available for selection.
(4)The Commission and any selection panel must have regard to the guidance in matters to which it relates.
66Guidance: supplementaryU.K.
(1)Before issuing any guidance the Lord Chancellor must—
(a)consult the Lord Chief Justice;
(b)after doing so, lay a draft of the proposed guidance before each House of Parliament.
(2)If the draft is approved by a resolution of each House of Parliament within the 40-day period the Lord Chancellor must issue the guidance in the form of the draft.
(3)In any other case the Lord Chancellor must take no further steps in relation to the proposed guidance.
(4)Subsection (3) does not prevent a new draft of the proposed guidance from being laid before each House of Parliament after consultation with the Lord Chief Justice.
(5)Guidance comes into force on such date as the Lord Chancellor may appoint by order.
(6)The Lord Chancellor may—
(a)from time to time revise the whole or part of any guidance and re-issue it;
(b)after consulting the Lord Chief Justice, by order revoke any guidance.
(7)In this section—
“40-day period” in relation to the draft of any proposed guidance means—
(a)
if the draft is laid before one House on a day later than the day on which it is laid before the other House, the period of 40 days beginning with the later day, and
(b)
in any other case, the period of 40 days beginning with the day on which the draft is laid before each House,
no account being taken of any period during which Parliament is dissolved or prorogued or during which both Houses are adjourned for more than 4 days;
“guidance” means guidance issued by the Lord Chancellor under section 65 and includes guidance which has been revised and re-issued.
Yn ddilys o 02/10/2006
Lord Chief Justice and Heads of DivisionU.K.
67Selection of Lord Chief Justice and Heads of DivisionU.K.
(1)Sections 68 to 75 apply to a recommendation for an appointment to one of the following offices—
(a)Lord Chief Justice;
(b)Master of the Rolls;
(c)President of the Queen's Bench Division;
(d)President of the Family Division;
(e)Chancellor of the High Court.
(2)Any such recommendation must be made in accordance with those sections and section 96.
68Duty to fill vacanciesU.K.
(1)The Lord Chancellor must make a recommendation to fill any vacancy in the office of Lord Chief Justice.
(2)The Lord Chancellor must make a recommendation to fill any vacancy in any other office listed in section 67(1).
(3)Subsection (2) does not apply to a vacancy while the Lord Chief Justice agrees that it may remain unfilled.
69Request for selectionU.K.
(1)The Lord Chancellor may make a request to the Commission for a person to be selected for a recommendation to which this section applies.
(2)Before making a request the Lord Chancellor must consult the Lord Chief Justice.
(3)Subsection (2) does not apply where the office of Lord Chief Justice is vacant or where the Lord Chief Justice is incapacitated for the purposes of section 16 (functions during vacancy or incapacity).
(4)Sections 70 to 75 apply where the Lord Chancellor makes a request under this section.
(5)Those sections are subject to section 95 (withdrawal and modification of requests).
70Selection processU.K.
(1)On receiving a request the Commission must appoint a selection panel.
(2)The panel must—
(a)determine the selection process to be applied,
(b)apply the selection process, and
(c)make a selection accordingly.
(3)One person only must be selected for each recommendation to which a request relates.
(4)Subsection (3) applies to selection under this section and to selection under section 75.
(5)If practicable the panel must consult, about the exercise of its functions under this section, the current holder of the office for which a selection is to be made.
(6)A selection panel is a committee of the Commission.
71Selection panelU.K.
(1)The selection panel must consist of four members.
(2)The first member is the most senior England and Wales Supreme Court judge who is not disqualified, or his nominee.
(3)Unless subsection (7) applies, the second member is the Lord Chief Justice or his nominee.
(4)Unless subsection (9) applies, the third member is the chairman of the Commission or his nominee.
(5)The fourth member is a lay member of the Commission designated by the third member.
(6)Subsection (7) applies if—
(a)the Lord Chief Justice is disqualified, or
(b)there is no Lord Chief Justice.
(7)In those cases the most senior England and Wales Supreme Court judge who is not disqualified must designate a person (but not a person who is disqualified) as the second member.
(8)Subsection (9) applies if—
(a)there is no chairman of the Commission, or
(b)the chairman of the Commission is unavailable and has not nominated a person under subsection (4).
(9)In those cases the third member is a lay member of the Commission selected by the lay members of the Commission other than the chairman.
(10)Only the following may be a nominee under subsection (2) or (3) or designated under subsection (7)—
(a)an England and Wales Supreme Court judge,
(b)a Head of Division, or
(c)a Lord Justice of Appeal.
(11)The following also apply to nominees under this section—
(a)a person may not be a nominee if he is disqualified;
(b)a person may not be appointed to the panel as the nominee of more than one person;
(c)a person appointed to the panel otherwise than as a nominee may not be a nominee.
(12)The first member is the chairman of the panel.
(13)On any vote by the panel the chairman of the panel has an additional, casting vote in the event of a tie.
(14)A person is disqualified for the purposes of this section if—
(a)he is the current holder of the office for which a selection is to be made, or
(b)he is willing to be considered for selection.
(15)In this section “England and Wales Supreme Court judge” means a judge of the Supreme Court who has held high judicial office in England and Wales before appointment to the Court.
72ReportU.K.
(1)After complying with section 70(2) the selection panel must submit a report to the Lord Chancellor.
(2)The report must—
(a)state who has been selected;
(b)contain any other information required by the Lord Chancellor.
(3)The report must be in a form approved by the Lord Chancellor.
(4)After submitting the report the panel must provide any further information the Lord Chancellor may require.
73The Lord Chancellor's optionsU.K.
(1)This section refers to the following stages—
Stage 1: | where a person has been selected under section 70 |
Stage 2: | where a person has been selected following a rejection or reconsideration at stage 1 |
Stage 3: | where a person has been selected following a rejection or reconsideration at stage 2. |
(2)At stage 1 the Lord Chancellor must do one of the following—
(a)accept the selection;
(b)reject the selection;
(c)require the selection panel to reconsider the selection.
(3)At stage 2 the Lord Chancellor must do one of the following—
(a)accept the selection;
(b)reject the selection, but only if it was made following a reconsideration at stage 1;
(c)require the selection panel to reconsider the selection, but only if it was made following a rejection at stage 1.
(4)At stage 3 the Lord Chancellor must accept the selection, unless subsection (5) applies and he accepts a selection under it.
(5)If a person whose selection the Lord Chancellor required to be reconsidered at stage 1 or 2 was not selected again at the next stage, the Lord Chancellor may, at stage 3, accept the selection made at that earlier stage.
74Exercise of powers to reject or require reconsiderationU.K.
(1)The power of the Lord Chancellor under section 73 to reject a selection at stage 1 or 2 is exercisable only on the grounds that, in the Lord Chancellor's opinion, the person selected is not suitable for the office concerned.
(2)The power of the Lord Chancellor under section 73 to require the selection panel to reconsider a selection at stage 1 or 2 is exercisable only on the grounds that, in the Lord Chancellor's opinion—
(a)there is not enough evidence that the person is suitable for the office concerned, or
(b)there is evidence that the person is not the best candidate on merit.
(3)The Lord Chancellor must give the selection panel reasons in writing for rejecting or requiring reconsideration of a selection.
75Selection following rejection or requirement to reconsiderU.K.
(1)If under section 73 the Lord Chancellor rejects or requires reconsideration of a selection at stage 1 or 2, the selection panel must select a person in accordance with this section.
(2)If the Lord Chancellor rejects a selection, the selection panel—
(a)may not select the person rejected, and
(b)where the rejection is following reconsideration of a selection, may not select the person (if different) whose selection it reconsidered.
(3)If the Lord Chancellor requires a selection to be reconsidered, the selection panel—
(a)may select the same person or a different person, but
(b)where the requirement is following a rejection, may not select the person rejected.
(4)The selection panel must inform the Lord Chancellor of the person selected following a rejection or a requirement to reconsider.
(5)Subsections (2) and (3) do not prevent a person being selected on a subsequent request under section 69.
Yn ddilys o 19/09/2007
[Senior President of TribunalsU.K.
75ASections 75B to 75G apply where request made for selectionU.K.
(1)Sections 75B to 75G apply where the Lord Chancellor makes a request to the Commission under paragraph 2(5) of Schedule 1 to the Tribunals, Courts and Enforcement Act 2007 (request for person to be selected for recommendation for appointment to the office of Senior President of Tribunals).
(2)Those sections are subject to section 95 (withdrawal and modification of requests).
75BSelection processU.K.
(1)On receiving a request the Commission must appoint a selection panel.
(2)The panel must —
(a)determine the selection process to be applied,
(b)apply the selection process, and
(c)make a selection accordingly.
(3)As part of the selection process the panel must consult—
(a)the Lord Chief Justice, if not a member of the panel,
(b)the Lord President of the Court of Session, if not a member of the panel, and
(c)the Lord Chief Justice of Northern Ireland, if not a member of the panel.
(4)One person only must be selected for the recommendation to which a request relates.
(5)Subsection (4) applies to selection under this section and to selection under section 75G.
(6)A selection panel is a committee of the Commission.
75CSelection panelU.K.
(1)The selection panel must consist of four members.
(2)The first member is the Lord Chief Justice, or his nominee.
(3)The second member is a person designated by the Lord Chief Justice.
(4)Unless subsection (7) applies, the third member is the chairman of the Commission or his nominee.
(5)The fourth member is a lay member of the Commission designated by the third member.
(6)Subsection (7) applies if—
(a)there is no chairman of the Commission, or
(b)the chairman of the Commission is unavailable and has not nominated a person under subsection (4).
(7)In those cases the third member is a lay member of the Commission selected by the lay members of the Commission other than the chairman.
(8)A nominee of the Lord Chief Justice must be a Head of Division or a Lord Justice of Appeal.
(9)The person designated under subsection (3) must be—
(a)a person who holds, or has held, the office of Senior President of Tribunals,
(b)a person who holds, or has held, office as a Chamber President of a chamber of the First-tier Tribunal or of a chamber of the Upper Tribunal, or
(c)a person who holds, or has held, an office that, in the opinion of the Lord Chief Justice, is such that a holder of it would acquire knowledge or experience of tribunals broadly similar to that which would be acquired by—
(i)a person who holds the office of Senior President of Tribunals, or
(ii)a person who holds office as a Chamber President of a chamber of the First-tier Tribunal, or
(iii)a person who holds office as a Chamber President of a chamber of the Upper Tribunal.
(10)Before designating a person under subsection (3), the Lord Chief Justice must consult—
(a)the Lord President of the Court of Session, and
(b)the Lord Chief Justice of Northern Ireland.
(11)A person may not be appointed to the panel if he is willing to be considered for selection.
(12)A person may not be appointed to the panel as the nominee of more than one person.
(13)A person appointed to the panel otherwise than as a nominee may not be a nominee.
(14)The first member is the chairman of the panel.
(15)On any vote by the panel the chairman of the panel has an additional, casting vote in the event of a tie.
75DReportU.K.
(1)After complying with section 75B(2) the selection panel must submit a report to the Lord Chancellor.
(2)The report must—
(a)state who has been selected;
(b)contain any other information required by the Lord Chancellor.
(3)The report must be in a form approved by the Lord Chancellor.
(4)After submitting the report the panel must provide any further information the Lord Chancellor may require.
75EThe Lord Chancellor's optionsU.K.
(1)This section refers to the following stages—
Stage 1: | where a person has been selected under section 75B |
Stage 2: | where a person has been selected following a rejection or reconsideration at stage 1 |
Stage 3: | where a person has been selected following a rejection or reconsideration at stage 2 |
(2)At stage 1 the Lord Chancellor must do one of the following—
(a)accept the selection;
(b)reject the selection;
(c)require the selection panel to reconsider the selection.
(3)At stage 2 the Lord Chancellor must do one of the following—
(a)accept the selection;
(b)reject the selection, but only if it was made following a reconsideration at stage 1;
(c)require the selection panel to reconsider the selection, but only if it was made following a rejection at stage 1.
(4)At stage 3 the Lord Chancellor must accept the selection, unless subsection (5) applies and he accepts a selection under it.
(5)If a person whose selection the Lord Chancellor required to be reconsidered at stage 1 or 2 was not selected again at the next stage, the Lord Chancellor may, at stage 3, accept the selection made at that earlier stage.
75FExercise of powers to reject or require reconsiderationU.K.
(1)The power of the Lord Chancellor under section 75E to reject a selection at stage 1 or 2 is exercisable only on the grounds that, in the Lord Chancellor's opinion, the person selected is not suitable for the office of Senior President of Tribunals.
(2)The power of the Lord Chancellor under section 75E to require the selection panel to reconsider a selection at stage 1 or 2 is exercisable only on the grounds that, in the Lord Chancellor's opinion—
(a)there is not enough evidence that the person is suitable for the office of Senior President of Tribunals, or
(b)there is evidence that the person is not the best candidate on merit.
(3)The Lord Chancellor must give the selection panel reasons in writing for rejecting or requiring reconsideration of a selection.
75GSelection following rejection or requirement to reconsiderU.K.
(1)If under section 75F the Lord Chancellor rejects or requires reconsideration of a selection at stage 1 or 2, the selection panel must select a person in accordance with this section.
(2)If the Lord Chancellor rejects a selection, the selection panel—
(a)may not select the person rejected, and
(b)where the rejection is following reconsideration of a selection, may not select the person (if different) whose selection it reconsidered.
(3)If the Lord Chancellor requires a selection to be reconsidered, the selection panel—
(a)may select the same person or a different person, but
(b)where the requirement is following a rejection, may not select the person rejected.
(4)The selection panel must inform the Lord Chancellor of the person selected following a rejection or a requirement to reconsider.
(5)Subsections (2) and (3) do not prevent a person being selected on a subsequent request under paragraph 2(5) of Schedule 1 to the Tribunals, Courts and Enforcement Act 2007.]
Yn ddilys o 02/10/2006
Lords Justices of AppealU.K.
76Selection of Lords Justices of AppealU.K.
(1)Sections 77 to 84 apply to a recommendation for appointment as a Lord Justice of Appeal.
(2)Any such recommendation must be made in accordance with those sections and section 96.
77Duty to fill vacanciesU.K.
(1)The Lord Chancellor must make a recommendation to fill any vacancy in the office of Lord Justice of Appeal.
(2)Subsection (1) does not apply to a vacancy while the Lord Chief Justice agrees that it may remain unfilled.
78Request for selectionU.K.
(1)The Lord Chancellor may make a request to the Commission for a person to be selected for a recommendation for appointment as a Lord Justice of Appeal.
(2)Before making a request the Lord Chancellor must consult the Lord Chief Justice.
(3)A request may relate to more than one recommendation.
(4)Sections 79 to 84 apply where the Lord Chancellor makes a request under this section.
(5)Those sections are subject to section 95 (withdrawal and modification of requests).
79Selection processU.K.
(1)On receiving a request the Commission must appoint a selection panel.
(2)The panel must—
(a)determine the selection process to be applied,
(b)apply the selection process, and
(c)make a selection accordingly.
(3)One person only must be selected for each recommendation to which a request relates.
(4)Subsection (3) applies to selection under this section and to selection under section 84.
(5)A selection panel is a committee of the Commission.
80Selection panelU.K.
(1)The selection panel must consist of four members.
(2)The first member is the Lord Chief Justice, or his nominee.
(3)The second member is a Head of Division or Lord Justice of Appeal designated by the Lord Chief Justice.
(4)Unless subsection (7) applies, the third member is the chairman of the Commission or his nominee.
(5)The fourth member is a lay member of the Commission designated by the third member.
(6)Subsection (7) applies if—
(a)there is no chairman of the Commission, or
(b)the chairman of the Commission is unavailable and has not nominated a person under subsection (4).
(7)In those cases the third member is a lay member of the Commission selected by the lay members of the Commission other than the chairman.
(8)A nominee of the Lord Chief Justice must be a Head of Division or a Lord Justice of Appeal.
(9)A person may not be appointed to the panel if he is willing to be considered for selection.
(10)A person may not be appointed to the panel as the nominee of more than one person.
(11)A person appointed to the panel otherwise than as a nominee may not be a nominee.
(12)The first member is the chairman of the panel.
(13)On any vote by the panel the chairman of the panel has an additional, casting vote in the event of a tie.
81ReportU.K.
(1)After complying with section 79(2) the selection panel must submit a report to the Lord Chancellor.
(2)The report must—
(a)state who has been selected;
(b)contain any other information required by the Lord Chancellor.
(3)The report must be in a form approved by the Lord Chancellor.
(4)After submitting the report the panel must provide any further information the Lord Chancellor may require.
82The Lord Chancellor's optionsU.K.
(1)This section refers to the following stages—
Stage 1: | where a person has been selected under section 79 |
Stage 2: | where a person has been selected following a rejection or reconsideration at stage 1 |
Stage 3: | where a person has been selected following a rejection or reconsideration at stage 2. |
(2)At stage 1 the Lord Chancellor must do one of the following—
(a)accept the selection;
(b)reject the selection;
(c)require the selection panel to reconsider the selection.
(3)At stage 2 the Lord Chancellor must do one of the following—
(a)accept the selection;
(b)reject the selection, but only if it was made following a reconsideration at stage 1;
(c)require the selection panel to reconsider the selection, but only if it was made following a rejection at stage 1.
(4)At stage 3 the Lord Chancellor must accept the selection, unless subsection (5) applies and he accepts a selection under it.
(5)If a person whose selection the Lord Chancellor required to be reconsidered at stage 1 or 2 was not selected again at the next stage, the Lord Chancellor may, at stage 3, accept the selection made at that earlier stage.
83Exercise of powers to reject or require reconsiderationU.K.
(1)The power of the Lord Chancellor under section 82 to reject a selection at stage 1 or 2 is exercisable only on the grounds that, in the Lord Chancellor's opinion, the person selected is not suitable for the office concerned.
(2)The power of the Lord Chancellor under section 82 to require the selection panel to reconsider a selection at stage 1 or 2 is exercisable only on the grounds that, in the Lord Chancellor's opinion—
(a)there is not enough evidence that the person is suitable for the office concerned, or
(b)there is evidence that the person is not the best candidate on merit.
(3)The Lord Chancellor must give the selection panel reasons in writing for rejecting or requiring reconsideration of a selection.
84Selection following rejection or requirement to reconsiderU.K.
(1)If under section 82 the Lord Chancellor rejects or requires reconsideration of a selection at stage 1 or 2, the selection panel must select a person in accordance with this section.
(2)If the Lord Chancellor rejects a selection, the selection panel—
(a)may not select the person rejected, and
(b)where the rejection is following reconsideration of a selection, may not select the person (if different) whose selection it reconsidered.
(3)If the Lord Chancellor requires a selection to be reconsidered, the selection panel—
(a)may select the same person or a different person, but
(b)where the requirement is following a rejection, may not select the person rejected.
(4)The selection panel must inform the Lord Chancellor of the person selected following a rejection or a requirement to reconsider.
(5)Subsections (2) and (3) do not prevent a person being selected on a subsequent request under section 78.
Puisne judges and other office holdersU.K.
85Selection of puisne judges and other office holdersU.K.
(1)Sections 86 to 93 apply to—
(a)a recommendation for an appointment to the office of puisne judge of the High Court;
(b)a recommendation for an appointment to an office listed in Part 1 of Schedule 14 in exercise of Her Majesty's function under the enactment listed opposite that office;
(c)an appointment to an office listed in Part 2 or 3 of that Schedule in exercise of the Lord Chancellor's function under the enactment listed opposite that office.
(2)Any such recommendation or appointment must be made in accordance with those sections and section 96.
(3)The Lord Chancellor may by order make any of the following amendments to Schedule 14—
(a)an amendment which adds a reference to an enactment under which appointments are made to an office;
(b)an amendment which adds a reference to an office to which appointments are made under an enactment;
(c)an amendment consequential on the abolition or change of name of an office;
(d)an amendment consequential on the substitution of one or more enactments for an enactment under which appointments are made to an office.
Modifications etc. (not altering text)
Commencement Information
Yn ddilys o 03/04/2006
86Duty to fill vacanciesU.K.
(1)The Lord Chancellor must make a recommendation to fill any vacancy in the office of puisne judge of the High Court or in an office listed in Part 1 of Schedule 14.
(2)The Lord Chancellor must make an appointment to fill any vacancy in an office listed in Part 2 or 3 of that Schedule.
(3)Subsections (1) and (2) do not apply to a vacancy while the Lord Chief Justice agrees that it may remain unfilled.
Yn ddilys o 03/04/2006
87Request for selectionU.K.
(1)The Lord Chancellor may request the Commission to select a person for a recommendation or appointment to which this section applies.
(2)Before making a request the Lord Chancellor must consult the Lord Chief Justice.
(3)A request may relate to more than one recommendation or appointment.
(4)Sections 88 to 93 apply where the Lord Chancellor makes a request under this section.
(5)Those sections are subject to section 95 (withdrawal and modification of requests).
Yn ddilys o 03/04/2006
88Selection processU.K.
(1)On receiving a request the Commission must—
(a)determine the selection process to be applied,
(b)apply the selection process, and
(c)make a selection accordingly.
(2)But if or so far as the Commission decides that the selection process has not identified candidates of sufficient merit for it to comply with subsection (1)(c), section 93 applies and subsection (1)(c) does not apply.
(3)As part of the selection process the Commission must consult—
(a)the Lord Chief Justice; and
(b)a person (other than the Lord Chief Justice) who has held the office for which a selection is to be made or has other relevant experience.
(4)One person only may be selected for each recommendation or appointment to which a request relates.
(5)Subsection (4) applies to selection under this section and to selection under section 92 or 93.
Yn ddilys o 03/04/2006
89ReportU.K.
(1)After complying with section 88 the Commission must submit a report to the Lord Chancellor.
(2)The report must—
(a)describe the selection process;
(b)state any selection made;
(c)state any decision under section 88(2);
(d)state any recommendation made in consultation under section 88(3) by a person consulted;
(e)give reasons in any case where the Commission has not followed such a recommendation;
(f)contain any other information required by the Lord Chancellor.
(3)The report must be in a form approved by the Lord Chancellor.
(4)After submitting the report the Commission must provide any further information the Lord Chancellor may require.
Yn ddilys o 03/04/2006
90The Lord Chancellor's optionsU.K.
(1)This section refers to the following stages—
Stage 1: | where a person has been selected under section 88 |
Stage 2: | where a person has been selected following a rejection or reconsideration at stage 1 |
Stage 3: | where a person has been selected following a rejection or reconsideration at stage 2. |
(2)At stage 1 the Lord Chancellor must do one of the following—
(a)accept the selection;
(b)reject the selection;
(c)require the Commission to reconsider the selection.
(3)At stage 2 the Lord Chancellor must do one of the following—
(a)accept the selection;
(b)reject the selection, but only if it was made following a reconsideration at stage 1;
(c)require the Commission to reconsider the selection, but only if it was made following a rejection at stage 1.
(4)At stage 3 the Lord Chancellor must accept the selection, unless subsection (5) applies and he accepts a selection under it.
(5)If a person whose selection the Lord Chancellor required to be reconsidered at stage 1 or 2 was not selected again at the next stage, the Lord Chancellor may, at stage 3, accept the selection made at that earlier stage.
(6)Before exercising his powers under this section at any stage in relation to a selection for an appointment or recommendation, the Lord Chancellor must—
(a)consult any person whom he is required by any enactment to consult before making the appointment or recommendation, and
(b)consult the Scottish Ministers if it appears to him to be an appointment, or a recommendation for the appointment, of a person to exercise functions wholly or mainly in Scotland.
Yn ddilys o 03/04/2006
91Exercise of powers to reject or require reconsiderationU.K.
(1)The power of the Lord Chancellor under section 90 to reject a selection at stage 1 or 2 is exercisable only on the grounds that, in the Lord Chancellor's opinion, the person selected is not suitable for the office concerned or particular functions of that office.
(2)The power of the Lord Chancellor under section 90 to require the Commission to reconsider a selection at stage 1 or 2 is exercisable only on the grounds that, in the Lord Chancellor's opinion—
(a)there is not enough evidence that the person is suitable for the office concerned or particular functions of that office, or
(b)there is evidence that the person is not the best candidate on merit.
(3)The Lord Chancellor must give the Commission reasons in writing for rejecting or requiring reconsideration of a selection.
Yn ddilys o 03/04/2006
92Selection following rejection or requirement to reconsiderU.K.
(1)If under section 90 the Lord Chancellor rejects or requires reconsideration of a selection at stage 1 or 2, the Commission must select a person in accordance with this section.
(2)If the Lord Chancellor rejects a selection, the Commission—
(a)may not select the person rejected, and
(b)where the rejection is following a requirement to reconsider, may not select the person (if different) whose selection it reconsidered.
(3)If the Lord Chancellor requires a selection to be reconsidered, the Commission—
(a)may select the same person or a different person, but
(b)where the requirement is following a rejection, may not select the person rejected.
(4)But if the Commission decides that the selection process has not identified a candidate of sufficient merit for it to make a selection under this section—
(a)section 93 applies;
(b)subsection (1) does not apply, but subsections (2) and (3) apply to any selection under section 93.
(5)The Commission must inform the Lord Chancellor of any person selected following a rejection or a requirement to reconsider.
(6)Subsections (2) and (3) do not prevent a person being selected on a subsequent request under section 87.
Yn ddilys o 03/04/2006
93Reconsideration of decision not to selectU.K.
(1)The Lord Chancellor may require the Commission to reconsider a decision that the selection process has not identified candidates of sufficient merit for it to make a selection.
(2)The Commission must inform the Lord Chancellor of any person selected on reconsideration under this section.
(3)Sections 90 to 92 apply to such a person as if the Commission had selected him instead of making the decision reconsidered.
Yn ddilys o 03/04/2006
94Duty to identify persons for future requestsU.K.
(1)If the Lord Chancellor gives the Commission notice of a request he expects to make under section 87 the Commission must—
(a)seek to identify persons it considers would be suitable for selection on the request, and
(b)submit a report to the Lord Chancellor containing any information it considers appropriate about—
(i)the extent to which it has identified suitable persons, and
(ii)other matters likely to assist the Lord Chancellor in exercising his functions relating to appointments and recommendations.
(2)For the purposes of subsection (1)(a) and (b)(ii), the Commission must in particular have regard to—
(a)the number of recommendations and appointments the Lord Chancellor expects to request selections for;
(b)the powers of the Lord Chancellor to reject or require reconsideration of a selection.
(3)As part of the process of identifying persons under subsection (1)(a), the Commission must consult—
(a)the Lord Chief Justice, and
(b)a person or persons, other than the Lord Chief Justice, with experience in the office or offices to which requests specified in the notice relate, or with other relevant experience.
(4)A report under subsection (1)(b) must—
(a)state any recommendation made in consultation under subsection (3) by a person consulted;
(b)give reasons in any case where the Commission has not followed such a recommendation.
(5)Where the Lord Chancellor makes a request for the purposes of which the Commission has identified persons under subsection (1)(a), the Commission must, in determining the selection process to be applied, consider whether selection should be from among those persons.
Yn ddilys o 19/07/2007
[94AAppointments not subject to section 85: courtsU.K.
(1)Where this section applies to an appointment—
(a)section 85 does not apply, but
(b)the Lord Chancellor may not make the appointment without the concurrence of the Lord Chief Justice.
(2)This section applies to the appointment of a person, on a fee-paid basis, to an office in the table below (the “proposed appointment”) if the person—
(a)holds the corresponding qualifying office (or one of them) on a salaried basis, or
(b)ceased to hold the corresponding qualifying office (or one of them) within two years ending with the date when the proposed appointment takes effect and, immediately before ceasing to hold that office, held it on a salaried basis.
Proposed appointment (fee-paid) | Qualifying office (salaried) |
---|
An office listed in Part 2 of Schedule 14. | The same office. |
Deputy District Judge (Magistrates' Courts). | District Judge (Magistrates' Courts),
Senior District Judge (Chief Magistrate), or
Deputy Senior District Judge (Chief Magistrate).
|
Assistant Judge Advocate General, or a person appointed temporarily to assist the Judge Advocate General. | Judge Advocate of Her Majesty's Fleet,
Vice Judge Advocate General, or
Assistant Judge Advocate General.
|
(3)The Lord Chief Justice may nominate a judicial office holder (as defined in section 109(4)) to exercise his function under subsection (1)(b).
(4)In this section “salaried” and “fee-paid” have the meaning given by paragraph 1(2) of Schedule 7 to the Judicial Pensions and Retirement Act 1993 (c. 8).]
Yn ddilys o 19/07/2007
[94BAppointments not subject to section 85: tribunalsU.K.
(1)Where this section applies to a recommendation or appointment—
(a)section 85 does not apply, but
(b)the Lord Chancellor may not make the recommendation or appointment without the concurrence of the Senior President of Tribunals.
(2)In the case of the appointment of a person as a deputy judge of the Upper Tribunal, if the person holds or has held an office listed in section 6(1) of the Tribunals, Courts and Enforcement Act 2007, the Lord Chancellor must also consult the Lord Chief Justice before making the appointment.
(3)This section applies to, or to a recommendation to Her Majesty for, the appointment of a person, on a fee-paid basis, to an office in the table below (the “proposed appointment”) if the person—
(a)holds the corresponding qualifying office (or one of them) on a salaried basis, or
(b)subject to subsection (4), ceased to hold the corresponding qualifying office (or one of them) within two years ending with the date when the proposed appointment takes effect and, immediately before ceasing to hold that office, held it on a salaried basis.
Proposed appointment (fee-paid) | Qualifying office (salaried) |
---|
An office listed in Part 3 of Schedule 14 (other than the office of Chamber President or Deputy Chamber President of a chamber of the Upper Tribunal or the First-tier Tribunal). | a more senior office, listed in Part 3 of Schedule 14, in the same tribunal or body (but excluding the Upper Tribunal and the First-tier Tribunal).
|
Deputy Child Support Commissioner. | Chief Child Support Commissioner, or
Child Support Commissioner.
|
Deputy Social Security Commissioner. | Chief Social Security Commissioner, or
Social Security Commissioner.
|
Deputy judge of the Upper Tribunal. | Ordinary judge of the Court of Appeal in England and Wales,
Lord Justice of Appeal in Northern Ireland,
Judge of the Court of Session,
Puisne judge of the High Court in England and Wales or Northern Ireland,
County court judge in Northern Ireland,
District judge in England and Wales or Northern Ireland,
District Judge (Magistrates' Courts), or
Judge of the Upper Tribunal by virtue of any of paragraphs (a) to (f) or (i) of section 5(1) of the Tribunals, Courts and Enforcement Act 2007.
|
Judge of the First-tier Tribunal by appointment under paragraph 1(1) of Schedule 2 to the Tribunals, Courts and Enforcement Act 2007. | Transferred-in judge of the First-tier Tribunal (see section 31(2) of that Act). |
Other member of the First-tier Tribunal by appointment under paragraph 2(1) of Schedule 2 to the Tribunals, Courts and Enforcement Act 2007. | Transferred-in other member of the First-tier Tribunal (see section 31(2) of that Act). |
Judge of the Upper Tribunal by appointment under paragraph 1(1) of Schedule 3 to the Tribunals, Courts and Enforcement Act 2007. | Transferred-in judge of the Upper Tribunal (see section 31(2) of that Act). |
Other member of the Upper Tribunal by appointment under paragraph 2(1) of Schedule 3 to the Tribunals, Courts and Enforcement Act 2007. | Transferred-in other member of the Upper Tribunal (see section 31(2) of that Act). |
Deputy judge of the Upper Tribunal by appointment under paragraph 7(1) of Schedule 3 to the Tribunals, Courts and Enforcement Act 2007. | Deputy judge of the Upper Tribunal under section 31(2) of that Act. |
(4)In subsection (3)(b) the words “within two years ending with the date when the proposed appointment takes effect” do not apply if—
(a)the proposed appointment is to the office of deputy judge of the Upper Tribunal, and
(b)the corresponding qualifying office is—
(i)ordinary judge of the Court of Appeal in England and Wales,
(ii)Lord Justice of Appeal in Northern Ireland,
(iii)judge of the Court of Session, or
(iv)puisne judge of the High Court in England and Wales or Northern Ireland.
(5)In this section “salaried” and “fee-paid” have the meaning given by paragraph 1(2) of Schedule 7 to the Judicial Pensions and Retirement Act 1993.]
Yn ddilys o 03/04/2006
Supplementary provisions about selectionU.K.
95Withdrawal and modification of requestsU.K.
(1)This section applies to a request under section 69, 78 or 87.
(2)The Lord Chancellor may withdraw or modify a request only as follows—
(a)so far as a request relates to any recommendation or appointment to fill a vacancy, he may withdraw or modify it with the agreement of the Lord Chief Justice;
(b)so far as a request relates to any recommendation or appointment otherwise than to fill a vacancy, he may withdraw or modify it after consulting the Lord Chief Justice;
(c)he may withdraw a request as respects all recommendations or appointments to which it relates if, after consulting the Lord Chief Justice, he considers the selection process determined by the Commission or selection panel is not satisfactory, or has not been applied satisfactorily.
(3)If a request is withdrawn in part or modified, the Commission or selection panel may, if it thinks it appropriate because of the withdrawal or modification, change any selection already made pursuant to the request, except a selection already accepted.
(4)The Lord Chancellor may not withdraw a request under subsection (2)(c) if he has exercised any of his powers under section 73(2), 82(2) or 90(2) in relation to a selection made pursuant to the request.
(5)Any withdrawal or modification of a request must be by notice in writing to the Commission.
(6)The notice must state whether the withdrawal or modification is under subsection (2)(a), (b) or (c).
(7)In the case of a withdrawal under subsection (2)(c), the notice must state why the Lord Chancellor considers the selection process determined by the Commission or selection panel is not satisfactory, or has not been applied satisfactorily.
(8)If or to the extent that a request is withdrawn—
(a)the preceding provisions of this Part cease to apply in relation to it, and
(b)any selection made on it is to be disregarded.
(9)Withdrawal of a request to any extent does not affect the power of the Lord Chancellor to make another request in the same or different terms.
96Effect of acceptance of selectionU.K.
(1)This section applies where the Lord Chancellor accepts a selection under this Chapter.
(2)Subject to the following provisions of this section, the Lord Chancellor—
(a)must make the appointment, or recommendation, for which the selection has been made, and
(b)must appoint, or recommend, the person selected.
(3)Before making the appointment or recommendation the Lord Chancellor may direct the Commission to make arrangements in accordance with the direction—
(a)for any assessment of the health of the person selected that the Lord Chancellor considers appropriate, and
(b)for a report of the assessment to be made to the Lord Chancellor.
(4)Subsection (5) applies in any of the following circumstances—
(a)the Lord Chancellor notifies the Commission that he is not satisfied on the basis of a report under subsection (3)(b), having consulted the Lord Chief Justice, that the health of the person selected is satisfactory for the purposes of the appointment or recommendation;
(b)the person selected declines to be appointed or recommended, or does not agree within a time specified to him for that purpose;
(c)the person selected is otherwise not available within a reasonable time to be appointed or recommended.
(5)Where this subsection applies—
(a)the selection accepted and any previous selection for the same appointment or recommendation are to be disregarded;
(b)the request pursuant to which the selection was made continues to have effect;
(c)any subsequent selection pursuant to that request may be made in accordance with the same or a different selection process.
97Scotland and Northern IrelandU.K.
(1)This section applies to consultation that a person is required to undertake under any of these provisions—
(a)section 87(2);
(b)section 88(3);
(c)section 94(3);
(d)section 95(2)(a), (b) or (c),
(e)section 96(4)(a).
(2)If the consultation appears to that person to relate to the appointment (or a recommendation for the appointment) of a person to exercise functions wholly or mainly in Scotland, any reference in the provision to the Lord Chief Justice is to be read as a reference to the Lord President of the Court of Session.
(3)If the consultation appears to that person to relate to the appointment (or a recommendation for the appointment) of a person to exercise functions wholly or mainly in Northern Ireland, any reference in the provision to the Lord Chief Justice is to be read as a reference to the Lord Chief Justice of Northern Ireland.
Yn ddilys o 03/04/2006
Assistance in connection with other appointmentsU.K.
98Assistance in connection with other appointmentsU.K.
(1)The Commission must provide any assistance requested by the Lord Chancellor under this section.
(2)The Lord Chancellor may request assistance for the making by him or by another Minister of the Crown of an appointment or recommendation for appointment, other than one to which section 26 or a provision of this Part applies.
(3)The Lord Chancellor may only request assistance under this section if it appears to him appropriate because of the Commission's other functions under this Part and the nature of the appointment concerned.
(4)Without limiting the assistance that may be requested, it may include—
(a)determining a selection process;
(b)applying a selection process;
(c)selecting a person;
(d)selecting a short list;
(e)advice on any of those matters.
(5)Before making a request the Lord Chancellor must consult—
(a)the Lord Chief Justice, and
(b)the Commission.
(6)In this section “appointment” includes the conferring of any public function.
(7)In this Part references to selection under this Part include references to selection by the Commission pursuant to a request under this section (and references to a person selected under this Part are to be read accordingly).
Yn ddilys o 03/04/2006
Complaints and referencesU.K.
99Complaints: interpretationU.K.
(1)This section applies for the purposes of this Part.
(2)A Commission complaint is a complaint by a qualifying complainant of maladministration by the Commission or a committee of the Commission.
(3)A departmental complaint is a complaint by a qualifying complainant of maladministration by the Lord Chancellor or his department in connection with any of the following—
(a)selection under this Part;
(b)recommendation for or appointment to an office listed in Schedule 14.
(4)A qualifying complainant is a complainant who claims to have been adversely affected, as an applicant for selection or as a person selected under this Part, by the maladministration complained of.
100Complaints to the Commission or the Lord ChancellorU.K.
(1)The Commission must make arrangements for investigating any Commission complaint made to it.
(2)The Lord Chancellor must make arrangements for investigating any departmental complaint made to him.
(3)Arrangements under this section need not apply to a complaint made more than 28 days after the matter complained of.
101Complaints to the OmbudsmanU.K.
(1)Subsections (2) and (3) apply to a complaint which the complainant—
(a)has made to the Commission or the Lord Chancellor in accordance with arrangements under section 100, and
(b)makes to the Ombudsman not more than 28 days after being notified of the Commission's or Lord Chancellor's decision on the complaint.
(2)If the Ombudsman considers that investigation of the complaint is not necessary, he must inform the complainant.
(3)Otherwise he must investigate the complaint.
(4)The Ombudsman may investigate a complaint which the complainant—
(a)has made to the Commission or the Lord Chancellor in accordance with arrangements under section 100, and
(b)makes to the Ombudsman at any time.
(5)The Ombudsman may investigate a transferred complaint made to him, and no such complaint may be made under the Judicial Appointments Order after the commencement of this section.
(6)The Judicial Appointments Order is the Judicial Appointments Order in Council 2001, which sets out the functions of Her Majesty's Commissioners for Judicial Appointments.
(7)A transferred complaint is a complaint that lay to those Commissioners (whether or not it was made to them) in respect of the application of appointment procedures before the commencement of this section, but not a complaint that those Commissioners had declined to investigate or on which they had concluded their investigation.
(8)Any complaint to the Ombudsman under this section must be in a form approved by him.
102Report and recommendationsU.K.
(1)The Ombudsman must prepare a report on any complaint he has investigated under section 101.
(2)The report must state—
(a)what findings the Ombudsman has made;
(b)whether he considers the complaint should be upheld in whole or part;
(c)if he does, what if any action he recommends should be taken by the Commission or the Lord Chancellor as a result of the complaint.
(3)The recommendations that may be made under subsection (2)(c) include recommendations for the payment of compensation.
(4)Such a recommendation must relate to loss which appears to the Ombudsman to have been suffered by the complainant as a result of maladministration and not as a result of any failure to be appointed to an office to which the complaint related.
103Report procedureU.K.
(1)This section applies to a report under section 102.
(2)The Ombudsman must submit a draft of the report—
(a)to the Lord Chancellor, and
(b)if the complaint was a Commission complaint, to the Commission.
(3)In finalising the report the Ombudsman—
(a)must have regard to any proposal by the Lord Chancellor or the Commission for changes in the draft report;
(b)must include in the report a statement of any such proposal not given effect to.
(4)The report must be signed by the Ombudsman.
(5)If the complaint was a Commission complaint the Ombudsman must send the report in duplicate to the Lord Chancellor and the Commission.
(6)Otherwise the Ombudsman must send the report to the Lord Chancellor.
(7)The Ombudsman must send a copy of the report to the complainant, but that copy must not include information—
(a)which relates to an identified or identifiable individual other than the complainant, and
(b)whose disclosure by the Ombudsman to the complainant would (apart from this subsection) be contrary to section 139.
104References by the Lord ChancellorU.K.
(1)If the Lord Chancellor refers to the Ombudsman any matter relating to the procedures of the Commission or a committee of the Commission, the Ombudsman must investigate it.
(2)The matter may relate to such procedures generally or in a particular case.
(3)The Ombudsman must report to the Lord Chancellor on any investigation under this section.
(4)The report must state—
(a)what findings the Ombudsman has made;
(b)what if any action he recommends should be taken by any person in relation to the matter.
(5)The report must be signed by the Ombudsman.
105InformationU.K.
The Commission and the Lord Chancellor must provide the Ombudsman with such information as he may reasonably require relating to the subject matter of any investigation by him under section 101 or 104.
Yn ddilys o 03/04/2006
MiscellaneousU.K.
106Consultation on appointment of lay justicesU.K.
In section 10 of the Courts Act 2003 (c. 39) (appointment of lay justices etc.) after subsection (2) insert—
“(2A)The Lord Chancellor must ensure that arrangements for the exercise, so far as affecting any local justice area, of functions under subsections (1) and (2) include arrangements for consulting persons appearing to him to have special knowledge of matters relevant to the exercise of those functions in relation to that area.”
107Disclosure of information to the CommissionU.K.
(1)Information which is held by or on behalf of a permitted person (whether obtained before or after this section comes into force) may be disclosed to the Commission or a committee of the Commission for the purposes of selection under this Part.
(2)A disclosure under this section is not to be taken to breach any restriction on the disclosure of information (however imposed).
(3)But nothing in this section authorises the making of a disclosure—
(a)which contravenes the Data Protection Act 1998 (c. 29), or
(b)which is prohibited by Part 1 of the Regulation of Investigatory Powers Act 2000 (c. 23).
(4)This section does not affect a power to disclose which exists apart from this section.
(5)The following are permitted persons—
(a)a chief officer of police of a police force in England and Wales;
(b)a chief constable of a police force in Scotland;
(c)the Chief Constable of the Police Service of Northern Ireland;
(d)the Director General of the National Criminal Intelligence Service;
(e)the Director General of the National Crime Squad;
(f)the Commissioners of Inland Revenue;
(g)the Commissioners of Customs and Excise.
(6)The Lord Chancellor may by order designate as permitted persons other persons who exercise functions which he considers are of a public nature (including a body or person discharging regulatory functions in relation to any description of activities).
(7)Information must not be disclosed under this section on behalf of the Commissioners of Inland Revenue or on behalf of the Commissioners of Customs and Excise unless the Commissioners concerned authorise the disclosure.
(8)The power to authorise a disclosure under subsection (7) may be delegated (either generally or for a specific purpose)—
(a)in the case of the Commissioners of Inland Revenue, to an officer of the Board of Inland Revenue,
(b)in the case of the Commissioners of Customs and Excise, to a customs officer.
(9)For the purposes of this section a customs officer is a person commissioned by the Commissioners of Customs and Excise under section 6(3) of the Customs and Excise Management Act 1979 (c. 2).
Chapter 3U.K.Discipline
Modifications etc. (not altering text)
Yn ddilys o 03/04/2006
Disciplinary powersU.K.
108Disciplinary powersU.K.
(1)Any power of the Lord Chancellor to remove a person from an office listed in Schedule 14 is exercisable only after the Lord Chancellor has complied with prescribed procedures (as well as any other requirements to which the power is subject).
(2)The Lord Chief Justice may exercise any of the following powers but only with the agreement of the Lord Chancellor and only after complying with prescribed procedures.
(3)The Lord Chief Justice may give a judicial office holder formal advice, or a formal warning or reprimand, for disciplinary purposes (but this section does not restrict what he may do informally or for other purposes or where any advice or warning is not addressed to a particular office holder).
(4)He may suspend a person from a judicial office for any period during which any of the following applies—
(a)the person is subject to criminal proceedings;
(b)the person is serving a sentence imposed in criminal proceedings;
(c)the person has been convicted of an offence and is subject to prescribed procedures in relation to the conduct constituting the offence.
(5)He may suspend a person from a judicial office for any period if—
(a)the person has been convicted of a criminal offence,
(b)it has been determined under prescribed procedures that the person should not be removed from office, and
(c)it appears to the Lord Chief Justice with the agreement of the Lord Chancellor that the suspension is necessary for maintaining confidence in the judiciary.
(6)He may suspend a person from office as a senior judge for any period during which the person is subject to proceedings for an Address.
(7)He may suspend the holder of an office listed in Schedule 14 for any period during which the person—
(a)is under investigation for an offence, or
(b)is subject to prescribed procedures.
(8)While a person is suspended under this section from any office he may not perform any of the functions of the office (but his other rights as holder of the office are not affected).
109Disciplinary powers: interpretationU.K.
(1)This section has effect for the purposes of section 108.
(2)A person is subject to criminal proceedings if in any part of the United Kingdom proceedings against him for an offence have been begun and have not come to an end, and the times when proceedings are begun and come to an end for the purposes of this subsection are such as may be prescribed.
(3)A person is subject to proceedings for an Address from the time when notice of a motion is given in each House of Parliament for an Address for the removal of the person from office, until the earliest of the following events—
(a)either notice is withdrawn;
(b)either motion is amended so that it is no longer a motion for an address for removal of the person from office;
(c)either motion is withdrawn, lapses or is disagreed to;
(d)where an Address is presented by each House, a message is brought to each House from Her Majesty in answer to the Address.
(4)“Judicial office” means—
(a)office as a senior judge, or
(b)an office listed in Schedule 14;
and “judicial office holder” means the holder of a judicial office.
(5)“Senior judge” means any of these—
(a)Master of the Rolls;
(b)President of the Queen's Bench Division;
(c)President of the Family Division;
(d)Chancellor of the High Court;
(e)Lord Justice of Appeal;
(f)puisne judge of the High Court.
(6)“Sentence” includes any sentence other than a fine (and “serving” is to be read accordingly).
(7)The times when a person becomes and ceases to be subject to prescribed procedures for the purposes of section 108(4) or (7) are such as may be prescribed.
(8)“Under investigation for an offence” has such meaning as may be prescribed.
Yn ddilys o 03/04/2006
Applications for review and referencesU.K.
110Applications to the OmbudsmanU.K.
(1)This section applies if an interested party makes an application to the Ombudsman for the review of the exercise by any person of a regulated disciplinary function, on the grounds that there has been—
(a)a failure to comply with prescribed procedures, or
(b)some other maladministration.
(2)The Ombudsman must carry out a review if the following three conditions are met.
(3)The first condition is that the Ombudsman considers that a review is necessary.
(4)The second condition is that—
(a)the application is made within the permitted period,
(b)the application is made within such longer period as the Ombudsman considers appropriate in the circumstances, or
(c)the application is made on grounds alleging undue delay and the Ombudsman considers that the application has been made within a reasonable time.
(5)The third condition is that the application is made in a form approved by the Ombudsman.
(6)But the Ombudsman may not review the merits of a decision made by any person.
(7)If any of the conditions in subsections (3) to (5) is not met, or if the grounds of the application relate only to the merits of a decision, the Ombudsman—
(a)may not carry out a review, and
(b)must inform the applicant accordingly.
(8)In this section and sections 111 to 113, “regulated disciplinary function” means any of the following—
(a)any function of the Lord Chancellor that falls within section 108(1);
(b)any function conferred on the Lord Chief Justice by section 108(3) to (7);
(c)any function exercised under prescribed procedures in connection with a function falling within paragraph (a) or (b).
(9)In this section, in relation to an application under this section for a review of the exercise of a regulated disciplinary function—
(10)References in this section and section 111 to the exercise of a function include references to a decision whether or not to exercise the function.
Modifications etc. (not altering text)
111Review by the OmbudsmanU.K.
(1)Where the Ombudsman is under a duty to carry out a review on an application under section 110, he must—
(a)on the basis of any findings he makes about the grounds for the application, decide to what extent the grounds are established;
(b)decide what if any action to take under subsections (2) to (7).
(2)If he decides that the grounds are established to any extent, he may make recommendations to the Lord Chancellor and Lord Chief Justice.
(3)A recommendation under subsection (2) may be for the payment of compensation.
(4)Such a recommendation must relate to loss which appears to the Ombudsman to have been suffered by the applicant as a result of any failure or maladministration to which the application relates.
(5)If the Ombudsman decides that a determination made in the exercise of a function under review is unreliable because of any failure or maladministration to which the application relates, he may set aside the determination.
(6)If a determination is set aside under subsection (5)—
(a)the prescribed procedures apply, subject to any prescribed modifications, as if the determination had not been made, and
(b)for the purposes of those procedures, any investigation or review leading to the determination is to be disregarded.
(7)Subsection (6) is subject to any direction given by the Ombudsman under this subsection—
(a)for a previous investigation or review to be taken into account to any extent, or
(b)for any investigation or review which may form part of the prescribed procedures to be undertaken, or undertaken again.
(8)This section is subject to section 112.
Modifications etc. (not altering text)
112Reports on reviewsU.K.
(1)In this section references to the Ombudsman's response to an application are references to the findings and decisions referred to in section 111(1).
(2)Before determining his response to an application the Ombudsman must prepare a draft of a report of the review carried out on the application.
(3)The draft report must state the Ombudsman's proposed response.
(4)The Ombudsman must submit the draft report to the Lord Chancellor and the Lord Chief Justice.
(5)If the Lord Chancellor or the Lord Chief Justice makes a proposal that the Ombudsman's response to the application should be changed, the Ombudsman must consider whether or not to change it to give effect to that proposal.
(6)The Ombudsman must produce a final report that sets out—
(a)the Ombudsman's response to the application, including any changes made to it to give effect to a proposal under subsection (5);
(b)a statement of any proposal under subsection (5) that is not given effect to.
(7)The Ombudsman must send a copy of the final report to each of the Lord Chancellor and the Lord Chief Justice.
(8)The Ombudsman must also send a copy of the final report to the applicant, but that copy must not include information—
(a)which relates to an identified or identifiable individual other than the applicant, and
(b)whose disclosure by the Ombudsman to the applicant would (apart from this subsection) be contrary to section 139.
(9)Each copy must be signed by the Ombudsman.
(10)No part of the Ombudsman's response to an application has effect until he has complied with subsections (2) to (9).
Modifications etc. (not altering text)
113References to the Ombudsman relating to conductU.K.
(1)The Ombudsman must investigate any matter referred to him by the Lord Chancellor or the Lord Chief Justice that relates to the exercise of one or more regulated disciplinary functions.
(2)A matter referred to the Ombudsman under subsection (1) may relate to the particular exercise of a regulated disciplinary function or to specified descriptions of the exercise of such functions.
Modifications etc. (not altering text)
114Reports on referencesU.K.
(1)Where the Ombudsman carries out an investigation under section 113 he must prepare a draft of a report of the investigation.
(2)If the investigation relates to a matter which is the subject of a review on an application under section 110, subsection (1) applies only when the Ombudsman has sent a copy of the final report on that review to the Lord Chancellor, the Lord Chief Justice and the applicant.
(3)The draft report must state the Ombudsman's proposals as to—
(a)the findings he will make;
(b)any recommendations he will make for action to be taken by any person in relation to the matter subject to investigation.
(4)Those findings and recommendations are referred to in this section as the Ombudsman's response on the investigation.
(5)The Ombudsman must submit the draft report to the Lord Chancellor and the Lord Chief Justice.
(6)If the Lord Chancellor or the Lord Chief Justice makes a proposal that the Ombudsman's response on the investigation should be changed, the Ombudsman must consider whether or not to change it to give effect to that proposal.
(7)The Ombudsman must produce a final report that sets out—
(a)the Ombudsman's response on the investigation, including any changes made to it to give effect to a proposal under subsection (6);
(b)a statement of any proposal under subsection (6) that is not given effect to.
(8)The Ombudsman must send a copy of the final report to each of the Lord Chancellor and the Lord Chief Justice.
(9)Each copy must be signed by the Ombudsman.
GeneralU.K.
115Regulations about proceduresU.K.
The Lord Chief Justice may, with the agreement of the Lord Chancellor, make regulations providing for the procedures that are to be followed in—
(a)the investigation and determination of allegations by any person of misconduct by judicial office holders;
(b)reviews and investigations (including the making of applications or references) under sections 110 to 112.
116Contents of regulationsU.K.
(1)Regulations under section 115(a) may include provision as to any of the following—
(a)circumstances in which an investigation must or may be undertaken (on the making of a complaint or otherwise);
(b)steps to be taken by a complainant before a complaint is to be investigated;
(c)the conduct of an investigation, including steps to be taken by the office holder under investigation or by a complainant or other person;
(d)time limits for taking any step and procedures for extending time limits;
(e)persons by whom an investigation or part of an investigation is to be conducted;
(f)matters to be determined by the Lord Chief Justice, the Lord Chancellor, the office holder under investigation or any other person;
(g)requirements as to records of investigations;
(h)requirements as to confidentiality of communications or proceedings;
(i)requirements as to the publication of information or its provision to any person.
(2)The regulations—
(a)may require a decision as to the exercise of functions under section 108, or functions mentioned in subsection (1) of that section, to be taken in accordance with findings made pursuant to prescribed procedures;
(b)may require that prescribed steps be taken by the Lord Chief Justice or the Lord Chancellor in exercising those functions or before exercising them.
(3)Where regulations under section 115(a) impose any requirement on the office holder under investigation or on a complainant, a person contravening the requirement does not incur liability other than liability to such procedural penalty if any (which may include the suspension or dismissal of a complaint)—
(a)as may be prescribed by the regulations, or
(b)as may be determined by the Lord Chief Justice and the Lord Chancellor or either of them in accordance with provisions so prescribed.
(4)Regulations under section 115 may—
(a)provide for any prescribed requirement not to apply if the Lord Chief Justice and the Lord Chancellor so agree;
(b)make different provision for different purposes.
(5)Nothing in this section limits the generality of section 115.
117Procedural rulesU.K.
(1)Regulations under section 115 may provide for provision of a prescribed description that may be included in the regulations to be made instead by rules made by the Lord Chief Justice with the agreement of the Lord Chancellor.
(2)But the provision that may be made by rules does not include—
(a)provision within section 116(2);
(b)provision made for the purposes of section 108(7) or (8) or 116(3).
(3)The rules are to be published in such manner as the Lord Chief Justice may determine with the agreement of the Lord Chancellor.
118Extension of discipline provisions to other officesU.K.
(1)This Chapter applies in relation to an office designated by the Lord Chancellor under this section as it would apply if the office were listed in Schedule 14.
(2)The Lord Chancellor may by order designate any office, not listed in Schedule 14, the holder of which he has power to remove from office.
(3)An order under this section may be made only with the agreement of the Lord Chief Justice.
Yn ddilys o 03/04/2006
119Delegation of functionsU.K.
(1)The Lord Chief Justice may nominate a judicial office holder (as defined in section 109(4)) to exercise any of his functions under the relevant sections.
(2)The relevant sections are—
(a)section 108(3) to (7);
(b)section 111(2);
(c)section 112;
(d)section 116(3)(b).
Yn ddilys o 03/04/2006
Scotland and Northern IrelandU.K.
120ScotlandU.K.
(1)In section 108, in relation to a judicial office holder who exercises functions wholly or mainly in Scotland, references to the Lord Chief Justice are to be read as references to the Lord President of the Court of Session.
(2)Regulations under section 115 and rules under section 117 do not apply in relation to a judicial office holder who exercises functions wholly or mainly in Scotland unless they are made with the agreement of the Lord President of the Court of Session.
(3)In section 116(1)(f), (3)(b) and (4)(a) the references to the Lord Chief Justice include references to the Lord President of the Court of Session.
(4)In section 118(3), where the description of offices designated by the order is limited to (or includes) offices in which the holder exercises functions wholly or mainly in Scotland, the reference to the Lord Chief Justice is to be read as (or as including) a reference to the Lord President of the Court of Session.
(5)The Lord Chief Justice may by regulations provide for sections 110 to 113 to apply in relation to judicial office holders who exercise functions wholly or mainly in Scotland—
(a)as if in section 110(8)(b) the reference to the Lord Chief Justice were a reference to the Lord President of the Court of Session, and
(b)with any other modifications specified in the regulations.
(6)Regulations under subsection (5) may be made only with the agreement of the Lord Chancellor and the Lord President of the Court of Session.
(7)The Lord President of the Court of Session may nominate a judge of the Court of Session who is a member of the First or Second Division of the Inner House of that Court to exercise any of his functions under the relevant sections.
(8)The relevant sections are—
(a)section 108(3) to (7);
(b)section 111(2);
(c)section 112;
(d)section 116(3)(b).
121Northern IrelandU.K.
(1)In section 108, in relation to a judicial office holder who exercises functions wholly or mainly in Northern Ireland, references to the Lord Chief Justice are to be read as references to the Lord Chief Justice of Northern Ireland.
(2)Regulations under section 115 and rules under section 117 do not apply in relation to a judicial office holder who exercises functions wholly or mainly in Northern Ireland, unless they are made with the agreement of the Lord Chief Justice of Northern Ireland.
(3)In section 116(1)(f), (3)(b) and (4)(a) the references to the Lord Chief Justice include references to the Lord Chief Justice of Northern Ireland.
(4)In section 118(3), where the description of offices designated by the order is limited to (or includes) offices in which the holder exercises functions wholly or mainly in Northern Ireland, the reference to the Lord Chief Justice is to be read as (or as including) a reference to the Lord Chief Justice of Northern Ireland.
(5)The Lord Chief Justice may by regulations provide for sections 110 to 113 to apply in relation to judicial office holders who exercise functions wholly or mainly in Northern Ireland—
(a)as if in section 110(8)(b) the reference to the Lord Chief Justice were a reference to the Lord Chief Justice of Northern Ireland, and
(b)with any other modifications specified in the regulations.
(6)Regulations under subsection (5) may be made only with the agreement of the Lord Chancellor and the Lord Chief Justice of Northern Ireland.
(7)The Lord Chief Justice of Northern Ireland may nominate any of the following to exercise any of his functions under the relevant sections—
(a)the holder of one of the offices listed in Schedule 1 to the Justice (Northern Ireland) Act 2002 (c. 26);
(b)a Lord Justice of Appeal (as defined in section 88 of that Act).
(8)The relevant sections are—
(a)section 108(3) to (7);
(b)section 111(2);
(c)section 112;
(d)section 116(3)(b).
Yn ddilys o 03/04/2006
Chapter 4U.K.Interpretation of Part 4
122Interpretation of Part 4U.K.
In this Part—
“appoint” includes nominate or designate (and “appointment” is to be read accordingly);
the “Commission” means the Judicial Appointments Commission;
“Head of Division” means any of these—
(a)
the Master of the Rolls;
(b)
the President of the Queen's Bench Division;
(c)
the President of the Family Division;
(d)
the Chancellor of the High Court;
“High Court” means the High Court in England and Wales;
“high judicial office” has the meaning given by section 60;
“lay member” of the Commission has the meaning given by paragraph 4 of Schedule 12;
“Lord Chief Justice”, unless otherwise stated, means the Lord Chief Justice of England and Wales;
“Lord Justice of Appeal” means a Lord Justice of Appeal in England and Wales;
“office” includes a position of any description;
the “Ombudsman” means the Judicial Appointments and Conduct Ombudsman;
“prescribed” means prescribed by regulations under section 115 or, subject to section 117(2), by rules under section 117;
“vacancy” in relation to an office to which one of sections 68, 77 and 86 applies, means a vacancy arising on a holder of the office vacating it at any time after the commencement of that section.
and any reference to an enactment includes a reference to an enactment whenever passed or made.
which he considers necessary or expedient for the purposes of, in consequence of, or for giving full effect to, any provision of this Act.
Yn ddilys o 01/10/2005
Section 15
SCHEDULE 4U.K.Other functions of the Lord Chancellor and organisation of the courts
Part 1 U.K.Amendments
Yn ddilys o 03/04/2006
Ecclesiastical Licences Act 1533 (c. 21)U.K.
1(1)In section 11 of the Ecclesiastical Licences Act 1533 (refusal of archbishop to grant licences etc.) any reference to the Lord Chancellor or Lord Keeper of the Great Seal (however expressed) is to be read as a reference to the Chancellor of the High Court.U.K.
(2)The Chancellor of the High Court may nominate another judge of that court to exercise his functions under that section.
Yn ddilys o 03/04/2006
Habeas Corpus Act 1679 (c. 2)U.K.
2U.K.The Habeas Corpus Act 1679 is amended as follows.
3U.K.In section 1 (bringing before Lord Chancellor or other judges) omit “the lord chauncelior or lord keeper of the great seale of England for the time being or”.
4U.K.In section 2 (appeal to Lord Chancellor or other judges) omit—
(a)“the lord chauncellour or lord keeper or” in each place;
(b)“lord chauncellor lord keeper”;
(c)“the said lord chauncellor or lord keeper or” in the first and second places;
(d)“lord chauncellor or lord keeper or” in the last place.
5U.K.In section 9 (Lord Chancellor or other judge unduly denying writ) omit “the said lord chauncellor or lord keeper or”.
Yn ddilys o 03/04/2006
Cestui que Vie Act 1707 (c. 72)U.K.
6U.K.Any reference to the Lord Chancellor and keeper or commissioners for the custody of the great seal of Great Britain for the time being in section 1 of the Cestui que Vie Act 1707 is to be construed as a reference to a judge of the Chancery Division of the High Court.
Prospective
Pluralities Act 1838 (c. 106)U.K.
7U.K.The Pluralities Act 1838 is amended as follows.
8(1)Section 126 (consent of patron etc. where patronage in the Crown) is amended as follows.U.K.
(2)For the words from “if such benefice shall be above” to “great seal” substitute “ unless such benefice shall be within the patronage of the crown in right of the duchy of Lancaster, the instrument by which the power shall be exercised shall be executed by, and any such notice shall be given to, the Prime Minister ”.
(3)Omit “or persons”.
9(1)Section 128 (consent of patron etc. where patronage attached to duchy of Cornwall) is amended as follows.U.K.
(2)For the words from “the same” to “benefice in the patronage of the crown” substitute “ the Prime Minister, in accordance with section 126 ”.
(3)Omit “or persons” in the second place.
Prospective
...U.K.
10U.K.. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .
11U.K.. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .
12U.K.. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .
Yn ddilys o 03/04/2006
Public Notaries Act 1843 (c. 90)U.K.
13(1)Section 5 of the Public Notaries Act 1843 (refusal of master of faculties to grant a faculty) is amended as follows.U.K.
(2)For “chancellor of England or the lord keeper of the great seal” substitute “ Chancellor of the High Court ”.
(3)At the end of that section insert— “ The Chancellor of the High Court may nominate another judge of that court to exercise his functions under this section. ”
(4)This paragraph is subject to section 2(3) and (4) of the Statute Law (Repeals) Act 1998 (repeals relating to Isle of Man and Channel Islands).
Prospective
Inclosure Act 1859 (22 & 23 Vict. c. 43)U.K.
14U.K.In section 12 of the Inclosure Act 1859 (adaptation of references to patron where patronage is in the Crown) for the words from “Lord High” to “Great Seal” substitute “ Prime Minister ”.
Yn ddilys o 03/04/2006
British Law Ascertainment Act 1859 (c. 63)U.K.
15U.K.In section 5 of the British Law Ascertainment Act 1859 (interpretation) omit “the Lord Chancellor,”.
Yn ddilys o 03/04/2006
Promissory Oaths Act 1871 (c. 48)U.K.
16(1)Section 2 of the Promissory Oaths Act 1871 (persons before whom oaths to be taken) (as amended by paragraph 51 of Schedule 8 to the Courts Act 2003 (c. 39)) is amended as follows.U.K.
(2)In the paragraph beginning “In England and Wales” for “Lord Chancellor” substitute “ Lord Chief Justice of England and Wales ”.
(3)After that paragraph insert— “ The Lord Chief Justice may nominate a judicial office holder (as defined in section 109(4) of the Constitutional Reform Act 2005) to exercise his functions under the preceding paragraph. ”
(4)After the paragraph beginning “In Ireland” insert— “The Lord Chief Justice of Northern Ireland may nominate any of the following to exercise his functions under the preceding paragraph—
(a)the holder of one of the offices listed in Schedule 1 to the Justice (Northern Ireland) Act 2002;
(b)a Lord Justice of Appeal (as defined in section 88 of that Act).”
Yn ddilys o 03/04/2006
Stannaries Court (Abolition) Act 1896 (c. 45)U.K.
17(1)Section 1 of the Stannaries Court (Abolition) Act 1896 (abolition of Vice-Warden's Court) is amended as follows.U.K.
(2)In subsection (1) after “may” insert “ , after consulting the Lord Chief Justice, ”.
(3)After subsection (2) insert—
“(3)The Lord Chief Justice may nominate a judicial office holder (as defined in section 109(4) of the Constitutional Reform Act 2005) to exercise his functions under this section.”
Prospective
Judicial Committee Act 1915 (c. 92)U.K.
18(1)Section 1 of the Judicial Committee Act 1915 (power of Judicial Committee of the Privy Council to sit in more than one division at the same time) is amended as follows.U.K.
(2)In subsection (1) for “Lord Chancellor” substitute “ President of the Supreme Court of the United Kingdom ”.
Yn ddilys o 03/04/2006
Administration of Justice Act 1925 (c. 28)U.K.
19(1)Section 22 of the Administration of Justice Act 1925 (registration of deeds of arrangement) is amended as follows.U.K.
(2)In subsection (5) for “by the Lord Chancellor with the concurrence” substitute “ by the Lord Chief Justice with the concurrence of the Lord Chancellor and ”.
(3)After subsection (5) insert—
“(5A)The Lord Chief Justice may nominate a judicial office holder (as defined in section 109(4) of the Constitutional Reform Act 2005) to exercise his functions under subsection (5).”
Yn ddilys o 03/04/2006
Children and Young Persons Act 1933 (c. 12)U.K.
20(1)Section 45 of the Children and Young Persons Act 1933 (youth courts) (as amended by section 50 of the Courts Act 2003 (c. 39)) is amended as follows.U.K.
(2)In subsection (3) for “Lord Chancellor or a person acting on his behalf” substitute “ Lord Chief Justice, with the concurrence of the Lord Chancellor, ”.
(3)In subsection (4) for “Lord Chancellor may” substitute “ Lord Chief Justice may, with the concurrence of the Lord Chancellor, ”.
(4)In subsection (5) after “Lord Chancellor” insert “ or Lord Chief Justice ”.
(5)After subsection (8) insert—
“(9)The Lord Chief Justice may nominate a judicial office holder (as defined in section 109(4) of the Constitutional Reform Act 2005) to exercise his functions under subsection (3) or (4) or his powers under rules under subsection (4).”
Yn ddilys o 03/04/2006
Compensation (Defence) Act 1939 (c. 75)U.K.
21(1)The Compensation (Defence) Act 1939 is amended as follows.U.K.
(2)For the title to section 9 substitute “ Incidental powers of tribunals and rules of procedure ”.
(3)Omit section 9(1)(a) (powers of tribunals to make rules of procedure).
(4)After section 9(1) insert—
“(1A)Rules prescribing the procedure for notifying, presenting and hearing claims and all matters incidental thereto may be made in relation to each of the tribunals constituted under this Act.
(1B)Such rules are to be made as follows—
(a)if the rules relate to proceedings in England and Wales, they are to be made by the Lord Chancellor;
(b)if the rules relate to proceedings in Scotland, they are to be made by the Lord President of the Court of Session;
(c)if the rules relate to proceedings in Northern Ireland, they are to be made by the Lord Chancellor with the concurrence of the Lord Chief Justice of Northern Ireland.”
(5)In subsection (2) for the words from the beginning to “subsection” substitute “ Such rules ”.
(6)After subsection (3) insert—
“(4)The Lord President of the Court of Session may nominate a judge of the Court of Session who is a member of the First or Second Division of the Inner House of that Court to exercise his functions under this section.
(5)The Lord Chief Justice of Northern Ireland may nominate any of the following to exercise his functions under this section—
(a)the holder of one of the offices listed in Schedule 1 to the Justice (Northern Ireland) Act 2002;
(b)a Lord Justice of Appeal (as defined in section 88 of that Act).”
22U.K.In section 18 (application to Scotland and Northern Ireland)—
(a)omit subsection (2);
(b)for subsection (4) substitute—
“(4)Sections seven and nine of this Act shall have effect with these modifications—
(a)in their application to proceedings in Scotland before a tribunal constituted under this Act, for references to the High Court there shall be substituted references to the Court of Session;
(b)in their application to proceedings in Northern Ireland before a tribunal constituted under this Act, for references to the High Court there shall be substituted references to the High Court of Justice in Northern Ireland.”
Yn ddilys o 03/04/2006
London Building Acts (Amendment) Act 1939 (c. xcvii)U.K.
23(1)Section 109 of the London Building Acts (Amendment) Act 1939 (constitution etc of tribunal appeal) is amended as follows.U.K.
(2)In subsection (1)(i) for “if he thinks fit” substitute “ , if he thinks fit and if the Lord Chief Justice agrees, ”.
(3)After subsection (2) insert—
“(3)The Lord Chief Justice may nominate a judicial office holder (as defined in section 109(4) of the Constitutional Reform Act 2005) to exercise his functions under this section.”
Yn ddilys o 03/04/2006
Pensions Appeal Tribunals Act 1943 (c. 39)U.K.
24U.K.The Pension Appeal Tribunals Act 1943 is amended as follows.
25In section 6D (procedure in proceedings before Commissioner), after subsection (8) insert—
“(9)In the application of this section to Northern Ireland—
(a)for any reference to the Social Security Act 1998 there shall be substituted a reference to the Social Security (Northern Ireland) Order 1998;
(b)for any reference to section 16 of that Act there shall be substituted a reference to Article 16 of that Order.”
26U.K.Omit section 13 (application to Scotland).
27U.K.Omit section 14 (application to Northern Ireland).
28(1)The Schedule (constitution, jurisdiction and procedure of Tribunals) is amended as follows.
(2)For paragraph 1 substitute—
“1(1)There shall be constituted in England and Wales such number of Pensions Appeal Tribunals as the Lord Chancellor may from time to time determine; and they shall sit at such times and in such places as he may from time to time determine.
(2)There shall be constituted in Scotland such number of Pensions Appeal Tribunals as the Lord President of the Court of Session may from time to time determine; and they shall sit at such times and in such places as he may from time to time determine.
(3)There shall be constituted in Northern Ireland such number of Pensions Appeal Tribunals as the Lord Chancellor may from time to time determine; and they shall sit at such times and in such places as he may from time to time determine.
(4)The Lord Chancellor must consult the Lord Chief Justice of England and Wales before exercising any functions under sub-paragraph (1).
(5)The Lord Chancellor must consult the Lord Chief Justice of Northern Ireland before exercising any functions under sub-paragraph (3).”
(3)In paragraph 2 (membership)—
(a)in sub-paragraph (1) for “appointed by the Lord Chancellor” substitute “appointed—
(a)in relation to England and Wales, by the Lord Chancellor;
(b)in relation to Scotland, by the Lord President of the Court of Session;
(c)in relation to Northern Ireland, by the Lord Chancellor”;
(b)in sub-paragraph (2A) for “sub-paragraphs (3)” substitute “ sub-paragraphs (3A), (3B) ”;
(c)for sub-paragraph (3) substitute—
“(3A)The Lord Chancellor may, with the concurrence of the Lord Chief Justice of England and Wales, remove any member of a Tribunal appointed under sub-paragraph (1)(a).
(3B)The Lord President of the Court of Session may remove any member of a Tribunal appointed under sub-paragraph (1)(b).”;
(d)in sub-paragraph (4) for “sub-paragraph (3)” substitute “ sub-paragraphs (3A) and (3B) ”.
(4)In paragraph 2A (persons to be appointed to Tribunals)—
(a)in sub-paragraph (1) for the words from “The Lord Chancellor” to “paragraph 2 above” substitute “ Any person making appointments under paragraph 2 shall ensure that the appointments ”;
(b)in sub-paragraph (4) for the words from “In making” to “the Lord Chancellor” substitute “ It shall be the duty of any person making an appointment under paragraph 2 ”.
(5)In paragraph 2B (President and Deputy President of Pension Appeal Tribunals), in sub-paragraph (2)(c) for “Lord Chief Justice of Northern Ireland” substitute “ Lord Chancellor ”.
(6)In paragraph 5 (rules)—
(a)in sub-paragraph (1) for “the Lord Chancellor may make rules” substitute “ rules may be made ”;
(b)for “Lord Chancellor” in the second place substitute “person making them”;
(c)after sub-paragraph (1) insert—
“(1A)Such rules are to made by the following person—
(a)if the rules relate to England and Wales, by the Lord Chancellor;
(b)if the rules relate to Scotland, by the Lord President of the Court of Session;
(c)if the rules relate to Northern Ireland, by the Lord Chief Justice of Northern Ireland.”;
(d)in sub-paragraph (4)(b) after “Lord Chancellor” insert “ , or in relation to Scotland by the Lord President of the Court of Session, in either case ”.
(7)Before paragraph 8 insert—
“7B(1)The Lord Chief Justice of England and Wales may nominate a judicial office holder (as defined in section 109(4) of the Constitutional Reform Act 2005) to exercise his functions under paragraph 1.
(2)The Lord President of the Court of Session may nominate a judge of the Court of Session who is a member of the First or Second Division of the Inner House of that Court to exercise his functions under any of the provisions listed in sub-paragraph (3).
(3)Those provisions are—
(a)paragraph 3C(2)(b);
(b)paragraph 5(1A)(b).
(4)The Lord Chief Justice of Northern Ireland may nominate any of the following to exercise his functions under any of the provisions listed in sub-paragraph (5)—
(a)the holder of one of the offices listed in Schedule 1 to the Justice (Northern Ireland) Act 2002;
(b)a Lord Justice of Appeal (as defined in section 88 of that Act).
(5)Those provisions are—
(a)paragraph 1;
(b)paragraph 3C(2)(c);
(c)paragraph 5(1A)(c).”
Yn ddilys o 03/04/2006
Agriculture Act 1947 (c. 48)U.K.
29U.K.The Agriculture Act 1947 is amended, or has effect, as follows.
30U.K.In section 73 (establishment, constitution and procedure of Agricultural Land Tribunals), in subsection (1) for the words before “by order” substitute “ For the purposes of this section the Lord Chancellor shall, after consulting the Chairman of the Agricultural Land Tribunals, ”.
31(1)The functions of the Lord Chancellor under section 75 (provisions as to land lying partly in one area and partly in another) are exercisable only after consultation with the Lord Chief Justice.U.K.
(2)The Lord Chief Justice may nominate a judicial office holder (as defined in section 109(4) of this Act) to exercise his functions under sub-paragraph (1).
32U.K.In section 108 (regulations and orders), in subsection (1) omit “by the Minister” in the second place.
33(1)Schedule 9 (constitution of Agricultural Land Tribunals) is amended as follows.U.K.
(2)In paragraph 13 (chairman of each Tribunal), in sub-paragraph (4)—
(a)for “is” substitute “ and Lord Chief Justice are both ”;
(b)after “may” insert “ , with the concurrence of the Lord Chief Justice, ”.
(3)In paragraph 16A (discharge of chairman's duties)—
(a)that paragraph becomes sub-paragraph (1) of paragraph 16A;
(b)in that sub-paragraph for “Lord Chancellor” substitute “ Lord Chief Justice, after consulting the Lord Chancellor ”;
(c)after that sub-paragraph insert—
“(2)The Lord Chief Justice may nominate a judicial office holder (as defined in section 109(4) of the Constitutional Reform Act 2005) to exercise his functions under sub-paragraph (1).”
Yn ddilys o 03/04/2006
Lands Tribunal Act 1949 (c. 42)U.K.
34(1)Section 2 of the Lands Tribunal Act 1949 (members, officers and expenses of Lands Tribunal) is amended as follows.
(2)In subsection (3) for “Lord Chancellor may” substitute “ Lord Chief Justice of England and Wales may, after consulting the Lord Chancellor, ”.
(3)In subsection (4) after “Lord Chancellor” insert “ and the Lord Chief Justice of England and Wales ”.
(4)In subsection (9)(a) after “Lord Chancellor” insert “ and the Lord Chief Justice of England and Wales ”.
(5)After subsection (10) insert—
“(11)The Lord Chief Justice may nominate a judicial office holder (as defined in section 109(4) of the Constitutional Reform Act 2005) to exercise his functions under subsections (3) and (9A).”
Yn ddilys o 03/04/2006
Registered Designs Act 1949 (c. 88)U.K.
35U.K.The Registered Designs Act 1949 is amended as follows.
36(1)Section 27 (meaning of the court) is amended as follows.U.K.
(2)In subsection (2) for “Lord Chancellor may select” substitute “ Lord Chief Justice of England and Wales may, after consulting the Lord Chancellor, select ”.
(3)After subsection (2) insert—
“(3)The Lord Chief Justice may nominate a judicial office holder (as defined in section 109(4) of the Constitutional Reform Act 2005) to exercise his functions under subsection (2).”
37(1)Section 28 (the Appeal Tribunal) is amended as follows.U.K.
(2)In subsection (2)(a) for “by the Lord Chancellor” substitute “ by the Lord Chief Justice of England and Wales after consulting the Lord Chancellor ”.
(3)After subsection (10) insert—
“(11)The Lord Chief Justice may nominate a judicial office holder (as defined in section 109(4) of the Constitutional Reform Act 2005) to exercise his functions under subsection (2)(a).”
Yn ddilys o 03/04/2006
Courts-Martial (Appeals) Act 1951 (c. 46)U.K.
38U.K.The Courts-Martial (Appeals) Act 1951 is amended as follows.
39U.K.In section 28 (provisions with respect to office of Judge Advocate of fleet), after subsection (3) insert—
“(3A)The Lord Chancellor may make a recommendation under subsection (3) only with the concurrence of all of the following—
(a)the Lord Chief Justice of England and Wales;
(b)the Lord President of the Court of Session;
(c)the Lord Chief Justice of Northern Ireland.”
40U.K.In section 32 (tenure of office of Judge Advocate General and assistants), for subsection (1) substitute—
“(1)The Judge Advocate General shall be removable by Her Majesty on the ground of inability or misbehaviour upon a recommendation in that behalf made by the Lord Chancellor with the concurrence of all of the following—
(a)the Lord Chief Justice of England and Wales;
(b)the Lord President of the Court of Session;
(c)the Lord Chief Justice of Northern Ireland.
(1A)The Vice Judge Advocate General may be removed for inability or misbehaviour by the Lord Chancellor with the concurrence of all of the following—
(a)the Lord Chief Justice of England and Wales;
(b)the Lord President of the Court of Session;
(c)the Lord Chief Justice of Northern Ireland.
(1B)An Assistant Judge Advocate General may be removed for inability or misbehaviour by the Lord Chancellor with the concurrence of the appropriate senior judge.
(1C)The appropriate senior judge is the Lord Chief Justice of England and Wales, unless—
(a)the Assistant Judge Advocate General exercises functions wholly or mainly in Scotland, in which case it is the Lord President of the Court of Session, or
(b)the Assistant Judge Advocate General exercises functions wholly or mainly in Northern Ireland, in which case it is the Lord Chief Justice of Northern Ireland.”
Yn ddilys o 03/04/2006
Reserve and Auxiliary Forces (Protection of Civil Interests) Act 1951 (c. 65)U.K.
41(1)Section 5 of the Reserve and Auxiliary Forces (Protection of Civil Interests) Act 1951 (appropriate courts and procedure) is amended as follows.U.K.
(2)After subsection (5) insert—
“(5A)The Lord Chancellor must consult the Lord Chief Justice of England and Wales before making rules under subsection (1) that relate to England and Wales.
(5B)The Lord Chief Justice may nominate a judicial office holder (as defined in section 109(4) of the Constitutional Reform Act 2005) to exercise his functions under subsection (5A).”
Prospective
City of London (Guild Churches) Act 1952 (c. xxxviii)U.K.
42U.K.In Schedule 1 to the City of London (Guild Churches) Act 1952, for the entries in column 2 (patrons) relating to each of—
(a)All Hallows London Wall,
(b)St. Margaret Pattens, and
(c)St. Mary Aldermary,
substitute “ Her Majesty ”.
Yn ddilys o 03/04/2006
Pharmacy Act 1954 (c. 61)U.K.
43(1)In Schedule 1C to the Pharmacy Act 1954 (appeal tribunals), paragraph 3 (appointments) is amended as follows.U.K.
(2)In sub-paragraph (4) for “by the Lord Chancellor and” substitute “ by the Lord Chief Justice, after consulting the Lord Chancellor, and by ”.
(3)After sub-paragraph (5) insert—
“(6)The Lord Chief Justice may nominate a judicial office holder (as defined in section 109(4) of the Constitutional Reform Act 2005) to exercise his functions under this paragraph.”
Yn ddilys o 03/04/2006
Mines and Quarries Act 1954 (c. 70)U.K.
44(1)Section 170 of the Mines and Quarries Act 1954 (provisions as to references upon notices) is amended as follows.U.K.
(2)In subsection (9) after “Lord Chancellor” insert “ , the Lord Chief Justice ”.
(3)After subsection (9) insert—
“(10)The Lord Chief Justice may nominate a judicial office holder (as defined in section 109(4) of the Constitutional Reform Act 2005) to exercise his functions under subsection (9).”
Yn ddilys o 03/04/2006
Land Powers (Defence) Act 1958 (c. 30)U.K.
45U.K.Schedule 2 to the Land Powers (Defence) Act 1958 (provisions with respect to making certain orders under the Act) is amended as follows.
46(1)Paragraph 4 (inquiries into objections) is amended as follows.U.K.
(2)In sub-paragraph (1) for “by the Lord Chancellor” substitute “ in accordance with sub-paragraph (1A) ”.
(3)After sub-paragraph (1) insert—
“(1A)A person to hold an inquiry for the purposes of sub-paragraph (1) is to be appointed as follows—
(a)if the inquiry relates to land in England and Wales, the person is to be appointed by the Lord Chief Justice of England and Wales after consulting the Lord Chancellor;
(b)if the inquiry relates to land in Scotland, the person is to be appointed by the Lord President of the Court of Session;
(c)if the inquiry relates to land in Northern Ireland, the person is to be appointed by the Lord Chief Justice of Northern Ireland after consulting Lord Chancellor.”
(4)In sub-paragraph (3) for “The Lord Chancellor shall by statutory instrument make rules of procedure” substitute “ Rules of procedure shall be made by statutory instrument in accordance with sub-paragraph (3A) ”.
(5)After sub-paragraph (3) insert—
“(3A)Rules under sub-paragraph (3) are to be made as follows—
(a)if the rules are for the purposes of inquiries held in relation to land in England and Wales, they are to be made by the Lord Chancellor;
(b)if the rules are for the purposes of inquiries held in relation to land in Scotland, they are to be made by the Secretary of State after consultation with the Lord President of the Court of Session;
(c)if the rules are for the purposes of inquiries held in relation to land in Northern Ireland, they are to be made by the Lord Chancellor after consultation with the Lord Chief Justice of Northern Ireland.”
(6)In sub-paragraph (4) for the words from “as the Lord Chancellor” to the end substitute “as may be determined, with the approval of the Treasury—
(a)by the Lord Chancellor, or
(b)in a case where the Lord President of the Court of Session appointed the person, by the Secretary of State.”
(7)After sub-paragraph (4) insert—
“(5)The Lord Chief Justice of England and Wales may nominate a judicial office holder (as defined in section 109(4) of the Constitutional Reform Act 2005) to exercise his functions under this paragraph.
(6)The Lord President of the Court of Session may nominate a judge of the Court of Session who is a member of the First or Second Division of the Inner House of that Court to exercise his functions under this paragraph.
(7)The Lord Chief Justice of Northern Ireland may nominate any of the following to exercise his functions under this paragraph—
(a)the holder of one of the offices listed in Schedule 1 to the Justice (Northern Ireland) Act 2002;
(b)a Lord Justice of Appeal (as defined in section 88 of that Act).”
47(1)Paragraph 8 (application to court to challenge order) is amended as follows.U.K.
(2)That paragraph becomes sub-paragraph (1) of paragraph 8.
(3)In that sub-paragraph “for High Court” substitute “ appropriate court ”.
(4)After that sub-paragraph insert—
“(2)In this paragraph “appropriate court” means—
(a)if the order relates to land in England and Wales, the High Court in England and Wales;
(b)if the order relates to land in Scotland, the Court of Session;
(c)if the order relates to land in Northern Ireland, the High Court in Northern Ireland.”
48U.K.Omit paragraphs 10 and 11 (modifications for application to Scotland and Northern Ireland).
Yn ddilys o 03/04/2006
Agriculture Act 1958 (c. 71)U.K.
49U.K.In the Agriculture Act 1958, in section 5 (functions under section 73 of the Agriculture Act 1947) for “by the Lord Chancellor and not by the Minister” substitute “ as provided for in that section ”.
Yn ddilys o 03/04/2006
Land Powers (Defence) Act (Inquiries) Rules 1958 (S.I. 1958/2231)U.K.
50(1)Rule 2 of the Land Powers (Defence) Act (Inquiries) Rules 1958 (interpretation) is amended as follows.U.K.
(2)In paragraph (1), in the definition of “appointed person” for the words from “appointed by” to the end substitute “ appointed in accordance with sub-paragraph (1A) of paragraph 4 of the Second Schedule to the Act to hold an inquiry pursuant to that paragraph; ”.
Yn ddilys o 03/04/2006
Mental Health Act 1959 (c. 72)U.K.
51U.K.In section 145 of the Mental Health Act 1959 (general provisions as to regulations, orders and rules) omit “or the Lord Chancellor”.
Yn ddilys o 03/04/2006
Administration of Justice Act 1960 (c. 65)U.K.
52U.K.In section 14 of the Administration of Justice Act 1960 (procedure on application for habeas corpus), in subsection (2) omit “; and no such application shall in any case be made to the Lord Chancellor”.
Yn ddilys o 03/04/2006
Transport Act 1962 (c. 46)U.K.
53U.K.The Transport Act 1962 is amended as follows.
54(1)Section 74 (Minister's power to make orders about pensions) is amended as follows.U.K.
(2)In subsection (6)(c) after “Lord Chancellor” insert “ and the Lord Chief Justice of England and Wales ”.
(3)After subsection (9) insert—
“(10)The Lord Chief Justice may nominate a judicial office holder (as defined in section 109(4) of the Constitutional Reform Act 2005) to exercise his functions under this section.”
55(1)Section 81 (compensation to officers and servants of the Commission) is amended as followsU.K.
(2)In subsection (4)(b) after “Lord Chancellor” insert “ and the Lord Chief Justice of England and Wales ”.
(3)After subsection (10) insert—
“(11)The Lord Chief Justice may nominate a judicial office holder (as defined in section 109(4) of the Constitutional Reform Act 2005) to exercise his functions under this section.”
56(1)In Schedule 7 (transitional provisions) paragraph 17 is amended as follows.U.K.
(2)In sub-paragraph (3) after “Lord Chancellor” insert “ and the Lord Chief Justice of England and Wales ”.
(3)After sub-paragraph (6) insert—
“(7)The Lord Chief Justice may nominate a judicial office holder (as defined in section 109(4) of the Constitutional Reform Act 2005) to exercise his functions under this paragraph.”
57U.K.Schedule 11 (application to Northern Ireland) is amended as follows.
58(1)Paragraph 6 (appointment of referee or board of referees) is amended as follows.U.K.
(2)That paragraph becomes sub-paragraph (1) of paragraph 6.
(3)After that sub-paragraph insert—
“(2)The Lord Chief Justice of Northern Ireland may nominate any of the following to exercise his functions under sub-paragraph (1)—
(a)the holder of one of the offices listed in Schedule 1 to the Justice (Northern Ireland) Act 2002;
(b)a Lord Justice of Appeal (as defined in section 88 of that Act).”
59U.K.Omit paragraph 10.
Yn ddilys o 03/04/2006
City of London (Courts) Act 1964 (c. iv)U.K.
60(1)Section 15 of the City of London (Courts) Act 1964 (oaths) is amended as follows.U.K.
(2)That section becomes subsection (1) of section 15.
(3)In that subsection for “Lord Chancellor” substitute “ Lord Chief Justice ”.
(4)After that subsection insert—
“(2)The Lord Chief Justice may nominate a judicial office holder (as defined in section 109(4) of the Constitutional Reform Act 2005) to exercise his functions under subsection (1).”
Yn ddilys o 03/04/2006
Finance Act 1966 (c. 18)U.K.
61(1)In Schedule 1 to the Finance Act 1966 (reliefs for shipbuilders), paragraph 6 is amended as follows.U.K.
(2)In sub-paragraph (2)—
(a)after “Lord Chancellor” insert “ with the concurrence of the Lord Chief Justice of England and Wales ”;
(b)before “the Lord Chief Justice of Northern Ireland” insert “ by the Lord Chancellor with the concurrence of ”.
(3)After sub-paragraph (4) insert—
“(5)The Lord Chief Justice of England and Wales may nominate a judicial office holder (as defined in section 109(4) of the Constitutional Reform Act 2005) to exercise his functions under this paragraph.
(6)The Lord Chief Justice of Northern Ireland may nominate any of the following to exercise his functions under sub-paragraph (2)—
(a)the holder of one of the offices listed in Schedule 1 to the Justice (Northern Ireland) Act 2002;
(b)a Lord Justice of Appeal (as defined in section 88 of that Act).”
Yn ddilys o 03/04/2006
Courts-Martial (Appeals) Act 1968 (c. 20)U.K.
62(1)Section 5 of the Courts-Martial (Appeals) Act 1968 (constitution of court for particular sittings) is amended as follows.U.K.
(2)In subsection (4) after “expedient to do so” insert “ after consulting the Lord Chief Justice ”.
(3)After subsection (5) insert—
“(6)The Lord Chief Justice may nominate a judicial office holder (as defined in section 109(4) of the Constitutional Reform Act 2005) to exercise his functions under this section.”
Yn ddilys o 03/04/2006
Taxes Management Act 1970 (c. 9)U.K.
63U.K.The Taxes Management Act 1970 is amended as follows.
64In section 2 (General Commissioners), after subsection (6) insert—
“(6A)The Lord Chancellor must consult the Lord Chief Justice of England and Wales or, in Northern Ireland, the Lord Chief Justice of Northern Ireland before exercising any function conferred on him by subsection (1) or (6).
(6B)The Lord Chief Justice of England and Wales may nominate a judicial office holder (as defined in section 109(4) of the Constitutional Reform Act 2005) to exercise his functions under this section.
(6C)The Lord Chief Justice of Northern Ireland may nominate one of the following to exercise his functions under this section—
(a)the holder of one of the offices listed in Schedule 1 to the Justice (Northern Ireland) Act 2002;
(b)a Lord Justice of Appeal (as defined in section 88 of that Act).”
65(1)Section 4 (Special Commissioners) is amended as follows.U.K.
(2)After subsection (3) insert—
“(3A)The Lord Chancellor may designate a person under subsection (3) only with the concurrence of all of the following—
(a)the Lord Chief Justice of England and Wales;
(b)the Lord President of the Court of Session;
(c)the Lord Chief Justice of Northern Ireland.”
(3)After subsection (4) insert—
“(4A)The Lord Chancellor may remove a Special Commissioner from office under subsection (4) only with the concurrence of the appropriate senior judge.
(4B)The appropriate senior judge is the Lord Chief Justice of England and Wales, unless—
(a)the Special Commissioner exercises functions wholly or mainly in Scotland, in which case it is the Lord President of the Court of Session, or
(b)the Special Commissioner exercises functions wholly or mainly in Northern Ireland, in which case it is the Lord Chief Justice of Northern Ireland.”
(4)After subsection (7) insert—
“(8)The Lord Chief Justice of England and Wales may nominate a judicial office holder (as defined in section 109(4) of the Constitutional Reform Act 2005) to exercise his functions under subsection (3A).
(9)The Lord President of the Court of Session may nominate a judge of the Court of Session who is a member of the First or Second Division of the Inner House of that Court to exercise his functions under subsection (3A).
(10)The Lord Chief Justice of Northern Ireland may nominate any of the following to exercise his functions under subsection (3A)—
(a)the holder of one of the offices listed in Schedule 1 to the Justice (Northern Ireland) Act 2002;
(b)a Lord Justice of Appeal (as defined in section 88 of that Act).”
Yn ddilys o 03/04/2006
Administration of Justice Act 1970 (c. 31)U.K.
66(1)Section 10 of the Administration of Justice Act 1970 (temporary additional judges of the Registered Designs Appeal Tribunal) is amended as follows.U.K.
(2)For subsection (1) substitute—
“(1)This section applies if both of the following conditions are met—
(a)the Lord Chancellor thinks that it is expedient, having regard to the state of business pending before the Registered Designs Appeal Tribunal and after consulting the Lord Chief Justice, for a person to be appointed to sit and act as an additional judge of the Tribunal (either alone or with a judge of the High Court who is a judge of the Tribunal);
(b)the Lord Chancellor requests the Lord Chief Justice to make such an appointment.
(1A)The Lord Chief Justice may, after consulting the Lord Chancellor, appoint one of the following persons as mentioned in subsection (1)(a)—
(a)a judge of the Court of Appeal;
(b)a person who has held office as a judge of the Court of Appeal or of the High Court;
(c)one of Her Majesty's Counsel.
(1B)An appointment under this section is—
(a)for such period, or
(b)for the purpose of hearing such appeals,
as the Lord Chief Justice determines, after consulting the Lord Chancellor.”
(3)After subsection (4) insert—
“(4A)The Lord Chief Justice may nominate a judicial office holder (as defined in section 109(4) of the Constitutional Reform Act 2005) to exercise his functions under this section.”
Yn ddilys o 03/04/2006
Courts Act 1971 (c. 23)U.K.
67U.K.The Courts Act 1971 is amended as follows.
68U.K.In section 17 (retirement, removal and disqualification of Circuit judges), in subsection (4) after “fit” insert “ and if the Lord Chief Justice agrees ”.
69(1)Section 21 (appointment of Recorders) is amended as follows.U.K.
(2)For subsections (3) and (4) substitute—
“(3)The appointment of a person as a Recorder shall specify the following—
(a)the term for which he is appointed;
(b)the frequency and duration of the occasions during that term on which he will be required to be available to undertake the duties of a Recorder;
(c)the circumstances in which the Lord Chancellor may—
(i)decline to extend the term of the appointment, or
(ii)terminate the appointment,
(other than those in subsection (4C)(a) or (b) and subsection (6)(a) or (b)).
(4)Circumstances may be specified under subsection (3)(c) in an appointment only if the Lord Chief Justice agrees.
(4A)Subject to subsections (4B) to (5), the Lord Chancellor must extend the term of a Recorder's appointment (including a term already extended under this subsection) before its expiry, for such term as the Lord Chancellor thinks appropriate.
(4B)The Lord Chancellor must not extend the term of a Recorder's appointment unless the Recorder agrees to the extension.
(4C)The Lord Chancellor may, with the agreement of the Lord Chief Justice, decline to extend the term of a Recorder's appointment on any of these grounds—
(a)the incapacity or misbehaviour of the Recorder;
(b)a failure of the Recorder to comply with any requirement specified under subsection (3)(b) in the terms of his appointment;
(c)one or more of the circumstances specified under subsection (3)(c) in his appointment applies.”
(3)For subsection (6) substitute—
“(6)The Lord Chancellor may, with the agreement of the Lord Chief Justice, terminate the appointment of a Recorder on any of these grounds—
(a)the incapacity or misbehaviour of the Recorder;
(b)a failure of the Recorder to comply with any requirement specified under subsection (3)(b) in the terms of his appointment;
(c)one or more of the circumstances specified under subsection (3)(c) in his appointment applies.”
70(1)Section 22 (oaths to be taken by Circuit judges and Recorders) is amended as follows.U.K.
(2)In subsection (2) for “Lord Chancellor” substitute “ Lord Chief Justice ”.
(3)After subsection (3) insert—
“(3A)The Lord Chief Justice may nominate a judicial office holder (as defined in section 109(4) of the Constitutional Reform Act 2005) to exercise his functions under subsection (2).”
71(1)Section 24 (deputy Circuit judges and assistant Recorders) is amended as follows.U.K.
(2)In subsection (1)—
(a)for “the Lord Chancellor” substitute “ him ”;
(b)omit “, he may”;
(c)in paragraph (a), before “appoint” insert “ the Lord Chief Justice may, with the concurrence of the Lord Chancellor, ”, and omit the word “or” in the last place where it occurs;
(d)in paragraph (b), before “appoint” insert “ the Lord Chancellor may ”.
(3)After subsection (5) insert—
“(6)The Lord Chief Justice may nominate a judicial office holder (as defined in section 109(4) of the Constitutional Reform Act 2005) to exercise his functions under subsection (1)(a).”
72U.K.In the table in paragraph 2 of Schedule 8 (general rules of construction), in the second column of entry 7 and of entry 14 for “Lord Chancellor” in each place substitute “ Lord Chief Justice ”.
73U.K.In Schedule 10 (transitional provisions), omit paragraphs 3 and 4.
Yn ddilys o 03/04/2006
Misuse of Drugs Act 1971 (c. 38)U.K.
74(1)Schedule 3 to the Misuse of Drugs Act 1971 (tribunal, advisory bodies and professional panels) is amended as follows.U.K.
(2)In the table in paragraph 21 (application of Parts 1 to 3 to Northern Ireland), in the entry for paragraph 1—
(a)for “the references to the Lord Chancellor and” substitute “ any reference to ”;
(b)for “respectively references to the Lord Chief Justice of Northern Ireland and” substitute “ a reference to ”.
(3)In that table, in the entry for paragraph 13—
(a)for “the references to the Lord Chancellor and” substitute “ any reference to the ”;
(b)for “respectively references to the Lord Chief Justice of Northern Ireland and” substitute “ a reference to ”;
(c)at the end of that entry insert—
“ | After sub-paragraph (2) there shall be inserted—
“(3)The Lord Chancellor must obtain the concurrence of the Lord Chief Justice of Northern Ireland before exercising his functions under sub-paragraph (1)(a).
(4)The Lord Chief Justice of Northern Ireland may nominate any of the following to exercise his functions under sub-paragraph (3)
(a)the holder of one of the offices listed in Schedule 1 to the Justice (Northern Ireland) Act 2002;
(b)a Lord Justice of Appeal (as defined in section 88 of that Act).””
|
Yn ddilys o 03/04/2006
Land Charges Act 1972 (c. 61)U.K.
75U.K.In section 16 of the Land Charges Act 1972 (general rules), in subsection (2) omit “of the Lord Chancellor, with the concurrence of the Secretary of State,”.
Yn ddilys o 03/04/2006
Matrimonial Causes Act 1973 (c. 18)U.K.
76(1)Section 10A of the Matrimonial Causes Act 1973 (proceedings after decree nisi: religious marriage) is amended as follows.U.K.
(2)In subsection (6) after “Lord Chancellor” insert “ after consulting the Lord Chief Justice ”.
(3)After subsection (7) insert—
“(8)The Lord Chief Justice may nominate a judicial office holder (as defined in section 109(4) of the Constitutional Reform Act 2005) to exercise his functions under this section.”
Yn ddilys o 03/04/2006
Juries Act 1974 (c. 23)U.K.
77U.K.The Juries Act 1974 is amended as follows.
78U.K.In section 5 (panels of persons summoned as jurors), after subsection (4) insert—
“(5)The Lord Chancellor must consult the Lord Chief Justice before giving any direction under subsection (1).
(6)The Lord Chief Justice may nominate a judicial office holder (as defined in section 109(4) of the Constitutional Reform Act 2005) to exercise his functions under this section.”
79(1)Section 9AA (requirement to issue guidance) is amended as follows.U.K.
(2)In subsection (1) after “shall” insert “ , after consulting the Lord Chief Justice, ”.
(3)After subsection (2) insert—
“(3)The Lord Chief Justice may nominate a judicial office holder (as defined in section 109(4) of the Constitutional Reform Act 2005) to exercise his functions under this section.”
Yn ddilys o 03/04/2006
Plant Varieties and Seeds Tribunal Rules 1974 (S.I. 1974/1136)U.K.
80(1)Rule 2 of the Plant Varieties and Seeds Tribunals Rules 1974 (interpretation) is amended as follows.U.K.
(2)In paragraph (1), in the definition of “the chairman” for the words from “appointed” to “Northern Ireland” in the second place substitute “ appointed in accordance with paragraph 2, 3 or 4 of Schedule 3 to the Plant Varieties Act 1997 ”.
Yn ddilys o 03/04/2006
Industry Act 1975 (c. 68)U.K.
81(1)Schedule 3 to the Industry Act 1975 (tribunals to arbitrate disputes relating to vesting and compensation orders) is amended as follows.U.K.
(2)In paragraph 4 (constitution and sittings)—
(a)that paragraph becomes sub-paragraph (1) of paragraph 4;
(b)in that sub-paragraph after “Lord Chancellor may” insert “ , after consulting the Lord Chief Justice of England and Wales, the Lord President of the Court of Session and the Lord Chief Justice of Northern Ireland, ”;
(c)after that sub-paragraph insert—
“(2)The Lord Chief Justice of England and Wales may nominate a judicial office holder (as defined in section 109(4) of the Constitutional Reform Act 2005) to exercise his functions under this paragraph.
(3)The Lord President of the Court of Session may nominate a judge of the Court of Session who is a member of the First or Second Division of the Inner House of that Court to exercise his functions under this paragraph.
(4)The Lord Chief Justice of Northern Ireland may nominate any of the following to exercise his functions under this paragraph—
(a)the holder of one of the offices listed in Schedule 1 to the Justice (Northern Ireland) Act 2002;
(b)a Lord Justice of Appeal (as defined in section 88 of that Act).”
(3)In paragraph 5 (Scottish proceedings) for “paragraph 4” substitute “ paragraph 4(1) ”.
(4)In paragraph 8(a) (meaning of “appointor”) for “paragraph 4” substitute “ paragraph 4(1) ”.
(5)After paragraph 8 insert—
“8AWhere the appointor is, by virtue of paragraph 8(a), the Lord Chancellor, the power conferred by paragraph 6(1)(b) may be exercised only with the concurrence of the appropriate senior judge.
8BThe appropriate senior judge is the Lord Chief Justice of England and Wales, unless the member to be removed exercises functions wholly or mainly in Northern Ireland, in which case it is the Lord Chief Justice of Northern Ireland.”
Yn ddilys o 03/04/2006
Local Land Charges Act 1975 (c. 76)U.K.
82U.K.The Local Land Charges Act 1975 is amended as follows.
83U.K.After section 13 insert—
“13ASpecification of fees by registering authorities in England
(1)Each registering authority in England must specify fees which are to be payable by persons for services relating to local land charges which are provided to them by the authority.
(2)This section does not apply to any fees payable for the making of a personal search (for which see section 14(1)(h)(i) below).
(3)Different fees may be specified for different services or descriptions of service.
(4)A registering authority may provide for there to be services or descriptions of service in respect of which no fees are to be payable.
(5)In specifying fees, a registering authority must secure that, taking one financial year with another, the income from fees for each service or description of service, or for each group of services or descriptions of service that they think appropriate, does not exceed the costs of its provision.
(6)When exercising the duty under subsection (1) above, a registering authority must specify the date on or after which the fees specified under that subsection are to be payable.
(7)Where the duty under subsection (1) above is exercised by a registering authority, they must publish details of the fees specified under that subsection before the date mentioned in subsection (6) above.
(8)If any fees specified under subsection (1) above are to be the same immediately before as immediately after the beginning of a financial year, a registering authority must publish details of those fees shortly before the beginning of the financial year.
(9)In specifying fees or publishing details of fees, a registering authority must have regard to such guidance as the Lord Chancellor may issue.
(10)That guidance—
(a)may also include provision concerning the manner in which fees are to be paid, and
(b)may be framed by reference to guidance issued by a person other than the Lord Chancellor.
(11)The Lord Chancellor must lay before both Houses of Parliament any guidance that he issues under this section.
(12)In this section “financial year” means a period of 12 months beginning with 1st April.”
84(1)Section 9 (official searches) is amended as follows.U.K.
(2)For subsection (3) substitute—
“(3)In relation to England, the fee (if any) specified by a registering authority under section 13A below shall be payable, in such manner as the authority may specify, in respect of any requisition made under this section to that authority.
(3A)In relation to Wales, the prescribed fee (if any) shall be payable in the prescribed manner in respect of any requisition made under this section.”
(3)In subsection (4)—
(a)after “fee” insert “ (if any) ”;
(b)after “(3)” insert “ or (3A) ”.
85(1)In section 14 (rules), for subsection (1)(h) substitute—U.K.
“(h)for prescribing—
(i)in relation to England, the fees, if any, to be paid for the making of any personal search;
(ii)in relation to Wales, the fees, if any, to be paid for the filing of documents with a registering authority, the making of any entry on a register, the supply of copies of, or the variation or cancellation of, any such entry, and the making of any search of a register.”
(2)The reference to that section in Schedule 1 to the National Assembly for Wales (Transfer of Functions) Order 2004 (S.I. 2004/3044) is to be treated as referring to that section as amended by this paragraph.
Yn ddilys o 03/04/2006
Armed Forces Act 1976 (c. 52)U.K.
86(1)Section 6 of the Armed Forces Act 1976 (establishment of Standing Civilian Courts) is amended as follows.U.K.
(2)After subsection (3) insert—
“(3A)The Lord Chancellor may give approval to an order under subsection (3) only after consulting the relevant judges.”
(3)After subsection (4) insert—
“(4A)The Lord Chancellor may make an appointment under subsection (4) only with the concurrence of the relevant judges.”
(4)In subsection (7) after “Lord Chancellor” insert “ and the relevant judges ”.
(5)After subsection (8) insert—
“(8A)The Lord Chancellor may give his approval under section (8) only with the concurrence of the relevant judges.”
(6)After subsection (11) insert—
“(11A)The Lord Chancellor may give his approval to the removal of a member under subsection (11) only with the concurrence of the Lord Chief Justice of England and Wales.”
(7)After subsection (17) insert—
“(18)References in this section to the relevant judges are references to all of the following—
(a)the Lord Chief Justice of England and Wales;
(b)the Lord President of the Court of Session;
(c)the Lord Chief Justice of Northern Ireland.
(19)The Lord Chief Justice of England and Wales may nominate a judicial office holder (as defined in section 109(4) of the Constitutional Reform Act 2005) to exercise his functions under this section, except his functions under subsection (11A).
(20)The Lord President of the Court of Session may nominate a judge of the Court of Session who is a member of the First or Second Division of the Inner House of that Court to exercise his functions under this section.
(21)The Lord Chief Justice of Northern Ireland may nominate any of the following to exercise his functions under this section—
(a)the holder of one of the offices listed in Schedule 1 to the Justice (Northern Ireland) Act 2002;
(b)a Lord Justice of Appeal (as defined in section 88 of that Act).”
Yn ddilys o 03/04/2006
Race Relations Act 1976 (c. 74)U.K.
87(1)Section 67 of the Race Relations Act 1976 (sheriff courts and designated county courts) is amended as follows.U.K.
(2)In subsection (1) after “Lord Chancellor” insert “ with the concurrence of the Lord Chief Justice ”.
(3)After subsection (5) insert—
“(6)The Lord Chief Justice may nominate a judicial office holder (as defined in section 109(4) of the Constitutional Reform Act 2005) to exercise his functions under this section.”
Yn ddilys o 03/04/2006
Rent (Agriculture) Act 1976 (c. 80)U.K.
88U.K.In section 26 of the Rent (Agriculture) Act 1976 (jurisdiction and procedure), omit subsection (5).
Yn ddilys o 03/04/2006
Aircraft and Shipbuilding Industries Act 1977 (c. 3)U.K.
89(1)Section 42 of the Aircraft and Shipbuilding Industries Act 1977 (the arbitration tribunal) is amended as follows.U.K.
(2)After subsection (2) insert—
“(2A)The arbitration tribunal shall either sit as a single tribunal or sit in two or more divisions, as the Lord Chancellor may direct after consulting all of the following—
(a)the Lord Chief Justice of England and Wales;
(b)the Lord President of the Court of Session;
(c)the Lord Chief Justice of Northern Ireland.”
(3)In subsection (3) for the words from the beginning to “consist of” substitute “ For the hearing of any proceedings, the arbitration tribunal shall, subject to subsection (4) below, consist of ”.
(4)After subsection (8) insert—
“(8A)Where the appointor is, by virtue of subsection (8)(a), the Lord Chancellor, the power conferred by subsection (5)(b) may be exercised only with the concurrence of the appropriate senior judge.
(8B)The appropriate senior judge is the Lord Chief Justice of England and Wales, unless the member whose office is to be declared vacant exercises functions wholly or mainly in Northern Ireland, in which case it is the Lord Chief Justice of Northern Ireland.”
(5)At the end insert—
“(11)The Lord Chief Justice of England and Wales may nominate a judicial office holder (as defined in section 109(4) of the Constitutional Reform Act 2005) to exercise his functions under subsection (2A)(a).
(12)The Lord President of the Court of Session may nominate a judge of the Court of Session who is a member of the First or Second Division of the Inner House of that Court to exercise his functions under subsection (2A)(b).
(13)The Lord Chief Justice of Northern Ireland may nominate any of the following to exercise his functions under subsection (2A)(c)—
(a)the holder of one of the offices listed in Schedule 1 to the Justice (Northern Ireland) Act 2002;
(b)a Lord Justice of Appeal (as defined in section 88 of that Act).”
Yn ddilys o 03/04/2006
Patents Act 1977 (c. 37)U.K.
90U.K.The Patents Act 1977 is amended as follows.
91(1)Section 97 (appeals from the comptroller) is amended as follows.U.K.
(2)In subsection (2) for “or on behalf of the Lord Chancellor” substitute “ the Lord Chief Justice of England and Wales after consulting the Lord Chancellor ”.
(3)After subsection (3) insert—
“(4)The Lord Chief Justice may nominate a judicial office holder (as defined in section 109(4) of the Constitutional Reform Act 2005) to exercise his functions under subsection (2).”
92(1)Section 102A (right of audience etc in proceedings on appeal from the comptroller) is amended as follows.
(2)In subsection (3) after “Lord Chancellor may” insert “ , with the concurrence of the Lord Chief Justice of England and Wales, ”.
(3)After subsection (6) insert—
“(7)The Lord Chief Justice may nominate a judicial office holder (as defined in section 109(4) of the Constitutional Reform Act 2005) to exercise his functions under this section.”
Yn ddilys o 03/04/2006
Administration of Justice Act 1977 (c. 38)U.K.
93(1)Section 23 of the Administration of Justice Act 1977 (jurisdiction of ancient courts) is amended as follows.U.K.
(2)In subsection (4) after “Lord Chancellor may” insert “ , after consulting the Lord Chief Justice, ”.
(3)After subsection (5) insert—
“(6)The Lord Chief Justice may nominate a judicial office holder (as defined in section 109(4) of the Constitutional Reform Act 2005) to exercise his functions under this section.”
Yn ddilys o 03/04/2006
Rent Act 1977 (c. 42)U.K.
94U.K.Omit section 142 of the Rent Act 1977 (rules as to procedure).
Yn ddilys o 03/04/2006
National Health Service Act 1977 (c. 49)U.K.
95In Schedule 9A to the National Health Service Act 1977 (Family Health Services Appeal Authority), in paragraph 5 (appointment of members of Authority) after “by the Lord Chancellor” insert “ , with the concurrence of the Lord Chief Justice, ”.
Yn ddilys o 03/04/2006
Domestic Proceedings and Magistrates' Courts Act 1978 (c. 22)U.K.
96(1)Section 2 of the Domestic Proceedings and Magistrates' Courts Act 1978 (powers of court to make orders for financial provision) is amended as follows.U.K.
(2)In subsection (3) omit the second paragraph.
(3)After subsection (3) insert—
“(4)An order made by the Lord Chancellor under this section—
(a)shall be made only after consultation with the Lord Chief Justice;
(b)shall be made by statutory instrument and be subject to annulment in pursuance of a resolution of either House of Parliament.
(5)The Lord Chief Justice may nominate a judicial office holder (as defined in section 109(4) of the Constitutional Reform Act 2005) to exercise his functions under this section.”
Yn ddilys o 03/04/2006
Customs and Excise Management Act 1979 (c. 2)U.K.
97U.K.In Schedule 3 to the Customs and Excise Management Act 1979 (provisions relating to forfeiture), after paragraph 17(4) insert—
“(5)The Lord Chancellor may make an appointment under sub-paragraph (4) only with the concurrence—
(a)where the proceedings referred to in sub-paragraph (1) were taken in England and Wales, of the Lord Chief Justice of England and Wales;
(b)where those proceedings were taken in Scotland, of the Lord President of the Court of Session;
(c)where those proceedings were taken in Northern Ireland, of the Lord Chief Justice of Northern Ireland.
(6)The Lord Chief Justice of England and Wales may nominate a judicial office holder (as defined in section 109(4) of the Constitutional Reform Act 2005) to exercise his functions under this paragraph.
(7)The Lord President of the Court of Session may nominate a judge of the Court of Session who is a member of the First or Second Division of the Inner House of that Court to exercise his functions under this paragraph.
(8)The Lord Chief Justice of Northern Ireland may nominate any of the following to exercise his functions under this paragraph—
(a)the holder of one of the offices listed in Schedule 1 to the Justice (Northern Ireland) Act 2002;
(b)a Lord Justice of Appeal (as defined in section 88 of that Act).”
Yn ddilys o 03/04/2006
Tobacco Products Duty Act 1979 (c. 7)U.K.
98(1)Section 5 of the Tobacco Products Duty Act 1979 (retail price of cigarettes) is amended as follows.U.K.
(2)In subsection (4) for the words from “by the Lord Chancellor” to the end substitute “ in accordance with subsections (7) to (9). ”
(3)After subsection (6) insert—
“(7)The Lord Chancellor is to appoint the referee.
(8)The appointment is to be made only with the concurrence of—
(a)the Lord Chief Justice of England and Wales, if the determination of the Commissioners was made in relation to England and Wales;
(b)the Lord President of the Court of Session, if the determination was made in relation to Scotland; or
(c)the Lord Chief Justice of Northern Ireland, if the determination was made in relation to Northern Ireland.
(9)None of the following may be appointed—
(a)an official of any government department;
(b)an office holder in, or a member of the staff of, the Scottish Administration.
(10)The Lord Chief Justice of England and Wales may nominate a judicial office holder (as defined in section 109(4) of the Constitutional Reform Act 2005) to exercise his functions under this section.
(11)The Lord President of the Court of Session may nominate a judge of the Court of Session who is a member of the First or Second Division of the Inner House of that Court to exercise his functions under this section.
(12)The Lord Chief Justice of Northern Ireland may nominate any of the following to exercise his functions under this section—
(a)the holder of one of the offices listed in Schedule 1 to the Justice (Northern Ireland) Act 2002;
(b)a Lord Justice of Appeal (as defined in section 88 of that Act).”
Yn ddilys o 03/04/2006
Magistrates' Courts Act 1980 (c. 43)U.K.
99U.K.The Magistrates' Courts Act 1980 is amended as follows.
100(1)Section 3B (transfer of trials of summary offences) is amended as follows.U.K.
(2)In subsection (3) for “Lord Chancellor may” substitute “ Lord Chief Justice may, with the concurrence of the Lord Chancellor, ”.
(3)After subsection (4) insert—
“(5)The Lord Chief Justice may nominate a judicial office holder (as defined in section 109(4) of the Constitutional Reform Act 2005) to exercise his functions under subsection (3).”
101(1)Section 67 (Family Proceedings Courts) (as substituted by section 49(1) of the Courts Act 2003 (c. 39)) is amended as follows.U.K.
(2)In subsection (3) for “Lord Chancellor or a person acting on his behalf” substitute “ Lord Chief Justice ”.
(3)In subsection (4) for “Lord Chancellor may by rules” substitute “ Lord Chief Justice may, after consulting the Lord Chancellor, by rules ”.
(4)In subsection (5) for “Lord Chancellor” substitute “ Lord Chief Justice ”.
(5)After subsection (8) insert—
“(9)The Lord Chief Justice may nominate a judicial office holder (as defined in section 109(4) of the Constitutional Reform Act 2005) to exercise his functions under subsection (3) or (4) or the powers conferred on him by rules under subsection (4).”
102(1)Section 144 (rule committee and rules of procedure) is amended as follows.U.K.
(2)Before subsection (1) insert—
“(A1)The Lord Chancellor may appoint a rule committee for magistrates' courts.”
(3)In subsection (1)—
(a)for the words from the beginning to “and may on” substitute “ The Lord Chief Justice may on ”;
(b)after “consultation with the rule committee” insert “ , and with the concurrence of the Lord Chancellor, ”.
(4)After subsection (1) insert—
“(1A)If the Lord Chancellor does not agree rules made by the Lord Chief Justice, the Lord Chancellor must give the Lord Chief Justice and the rules committee written reasons for doing so.”
(5)In subsection (2) for “he may determine” substitute “ he may, after consulting the Lord Chief Justice, determine ”.
(6)After subsection (4) insert—
“(4A)The Lord Chief Justice may nominate a judicial office holder (as defined in section 109(4) of the Constitutional Reform Act 2005) to exercise his functions under this section.”
103U.K.After section 144 insert—
“144ARules to be made if required by Lord Chancellor
(1)This section applies if the Lord Chancellor gives the Lord Chief Justice written notice that he thinks it is expedient for rules made under section 144 to include provision that would achieve a purpose specified in the notice.
(2)The Lord Chief Justice must make such rules as he considers necessary to achieve the specified purpose.
(3)Those rules must be—
(a)made within a reasonable period after the Lord Chancellor gives notice to the Lord Chief Justice;
(b)made in accordance with section 144.
(4)The Lord Chief Justice may nominate a judicial office holder (as defined in section 109(4) of the Constitutional Reform Act 2005) to exercise his functions under this section.”
Yn ddilys o 03/04/2006
Housing Act 1980 (c. 51)U.K.
104U.K.In section 86 of the Housing Act 1980 (jurisdiction of county court), omit subsections (4) to (6) (rules and directions).
Yn ddilys o 03/04/2006
Pensions Appeal Tribunals (Posthumous Appeals) Order 1980 (S.I. 1980/1082)U.K.
105U.K.The Pensions Appeal Tribunals (Posthumous Appeals) Order 1980 is amended as follows.
106U.K.In Article 6 (directions in relation to appeals brought or continued under the Order) for “judge of the High Court nominated by the Lord Chancellor in accordance with” substitute “ relevant judicial authority for the purposes of ”.
107U.K.In Article 10 (application to Scotland), omit paragraphs (b) and (c).
108U.K.In Article 11 (application to Northern Ireland)—
(a)omit paragraphs (b) and (c)';
(b)in paragraph (d) for “Chairman” substitute “ President ”.
Yn ddilys o 03/04/2006
Judicial Pensions Act 1981 (c. 20)U.K.
109U.K.The Judicial Pensions Act 1981 is amended as follows.
110U.K.In section 1 (interpretation) in the entry beginning “Judge of the Supreme Court” in the first column of the table omit “, other than the Lord Chancellor”.
111(1)Section 5 (Circuit Judge in England and Wales) is amended as follows.U.K.
(2)After subsection (1) insert—
“(1A)The Lord Chancellor must consult the Lord Chief Justice of England and Wales before making a recommendation in a case that falls within subsection (1)(b) or (c).”
(3)After subsection (6) insert—
“(7)The Lord Chief Justice may nominate a judicial office holder (as defined in section 109(4) of the Constitutional Reform Act 2005) to exercise his functions under this section.”
112(1)Section 7 (stipendiary magistrates in England and Wales) is amended as follows.U.K.
(2)After subsection (1) insert—
“(1A)The Lord Chancellor must consult the Lord Chief Justice before making a recommendation in a case that falls within subsection (1)(b).”
(3)After subsection (6) insert—
“(7)The Lord Chief Justice may nominate a judicial office holder (as defined in section 109(4) of the Constitutional Reform Act 2005) to exercise his functions under this section.”
113(1)Section 13 (Social Security Commissioners) is amended as follows.U.K.
(2)After subsection (1) insert—
“(1A)In a case that falls within subsection (1)(c), the Lord Chancellor must consult—
(a)the Lord Chief Justice of England and Wales before making a recommendation in relation to a Commissioner who holds office in England and Wales;
(b)the Lord President of the Court of Session before making a recommendation in relation to a Commissioner who holds office in Scotland;
(c)the Lord Chief Justice of Northern Ireland before making a recommendation in relation to a Commissioner who holds office in Northern Ireland.”
(3)After subsection (6)—
“(7)The Lord Chief Justice may nominate a judicial office holder (as defined in section 109(4) of the Constitutional Reform Act 2005) to exercise his functions under this section.
(8)The Lord President of the Court of Session may nominate a judge of the Court of Session who is a member of the First or Second Division of the Inner House of that Court to exercise his functions under this section.
(9)The Lord Chief Justice of Northern Ireland may nominate any of the following to exercise his functions under this section—
(a)the holder of one of the offices listed in Schedule 1 to the Justice (Northern Ireland) Act 2002;
(b)a Lord Justice of Appeal (as defined in section 88 of that Act).”
Supreme Court Act 1981 (c. 54)U.K.
Yn ddilys o 03/04/2006
114U.K.The Supreme Court Act 1981 is amended as follows.
115(1)Section 2 (membership of the Court of Appeal) is amended as follows.U.K.
(2)In subsection (2)—
(a)omit paragraph (a);
(b)in paragraph (b) for “has been Lord Chancellor” substitute “ was Lord Chancellor before 12 June 2003 ”;
(c)for paragraphs (f) and (g) substitute—
“(f)the President of the Queen's Bench Division;
(g)the President of the Family Division;
(h)the Chancellor of the High Court;”
(d)for “Lord Chancellor's request” substitute “ request of the Lord Chief Justice ”.
(3)After subsection (2) insert—
“(2A)The Lord Chief Justice may nominate a judicial office holder (as defined in section 109(4) of the Constitutional Reform Act 2005) to exercise his function under subsection (2) of making requests to persons within paragraphs (b) and (c) of that subsection.”
(4)After subsection (4) insert—
“(4A)It is for the Lord Chancellor to recommend to Her Majesty the making of an Order under subsection (4).”
(5)In subsection (6)—
(a)omit “Lord Chancellor,”;
(b)for “President of the Family Division or Vice-Chancellor” substitute “ President of the Queen's Bench Division, President of the Family Division or Chancellor of the High Court ”.
Yn ddilys o 03/04/2006
116(1)Section 3 (Divisions of Court of Appeal) is amended as follows.U.K.
(2)In subsection (3) for “Lord Chancellor may” substitute “ Lord Chief Justice may, after consulting the Lord Chancellor ”.
(3)After subsection (5) insert—
“(6)The Lord Chief Justice may nominate a judicial office holder (as defined in section 109(4) of the Constitutional Reform Act 2005) to exercise his functions under subsection (3).”
117(1)Section 4 (membership of the High Court) is amended as follows.U.K.
(2)In subsection (1)—
(a)omit paragraph (a);
(b)for paragraphs (c) and (d) substitute—
“(ba)the President of the Queen's Bench Division;
(c)the President of the Family Division;
(d)the Chancellor of the High Court;”.
(3)After subsection (4) insert—
“(4A)It is for the Lord Chancellor to recommend to Her Majesty the making of an Order under subsection (4).”
(4)In subsection (6)—
(a)omit “Lord Chancellor,”;
(b)for “President of the Family Division, Vice-Chancellor” substitute “ President of the Queen's Bench Division, President of the Family Division, Chancellor of the High Court ”.
118(1)Section 5 (divisions of the High Court) is amended as follows.U.K.
(2)In subsection (1)(a) for the words from “the Lord Chancellor” to “vice-president thereof,” substitute “ the Chancellor of the High Court, who shall be president thereof, ”.
(3)In subsection (1)(b) for “who shall be president thereof” substitute “ , the President of the Queen's Bench Division ”.
(4)In subsection (2) for “of the Lord Chancellor” in each place substitute “ given by the Lord Chief Justice after consulting the Lord Chancellor ”.
(5)In subsection (3) for the words from “with the concurrence of” to the end substitute “with the concurrence of both of the following—
(a)the senior judge of the Division to which the judge is attached;
(b)the senior judge of the Division of which the judge is to act as an additional judge.”
(6)After subsection (5) insert—
“(6)The Lord Chief Justice may nominate a judicial office holder (as defined in section 109(4) of the Constitutional Reform Act 2005) to exercise his functions under subsection (2).”
Yn ddilys o 03/04/2006
119(1)Section 6 (the Patents, Admiralty and Commercial Courts) is amended as follows.U.K.
(2)In subsection (2) for “Lord Chancellor may” substitute “ Lord Chief Justice may, after consulting the Lord Chancellor, ”.
(3)After subsection (2) insert—
“(3)The Lord Chief Justice may nominate a judicial office holder (as defined in section 109(4) of the Constitutional Reform Act 2005) to exercise his functions under subsection (2).”
120(1)Section 7 (power to alter Divisions etc) is amended as follows.U.K.
(2)In subsection (1) after “recommendation of” insert “ the Lord Chancellor and ”.
(3)In subsection (2)—
(a)omit “the Lord Chancellor,”;
(b)for “the President of the Family Division and the Vice-Chancellor” substitute “ the President of the Queen's Bench Division, the President of the Family Division and the Chancellor of the High Court ”.
Yn ddilys o 03/04/2006
121(1)Section 9 (assistance for transaction of judicial business of Supreme Court) is amended as follows.U.K.
(2)In subsection (2)—
(a)for the definition of “the appropriate authority” substitute—
““the appropriate authority” means—
(a)the Lord Chief Justice or a judicial office holder (as defined in section 109(4) of the Constitutional Reform Act 2005) nominated by him to exercise his functions under this section, or
(b)at any time when the Lord Chief Justice or the nominated judicial office holder is unable to make such a request himself, or there is a vacancy in the office of Lord Chief Justice, the Master of the Rolls;”
(b)omit the words after the definition of “relevant court”.
(3)After subsection (2) insert—
“(2A)The power of the appropriate authority to make a request under subsection (1) is subject to subsections (2B) to (2D).
(2B)In the case of a request to a person within entry 1, 3, 5 or 6 in column 1 of the Table, the appropriate authority may make the request only after consulting the Lord Chancellor.
(2C)In any other case the appropriate authority may make a request only with the concurrence of the Lord Chancellor.
(2D)In the case of a request to a Circuit judge or Recorder to act as a judge of the High Court, the appropriate authority may make the request only with the concurrence of the Judicial Appointments Commission.”
(4)In subsection (4)—
(a)for “appears to the Lord Chancellor” substitute “ appears to the Lord Chief Justice, after consulting the Lord Chancellor, ”;
(b)for “Lord Chancellor thinks fit” substitute “ Lord Chief Justice may, after consulting the Lord Chancellor, think fit ”.
(5)After subsection (8) insert—
“(9)The Lord Chief Justice may nominate a judicial office holder (as defined in section 109(4) of the Constitutional Reform Act 2005) to exercise his functions under subsection (4).”
Yn ddilys o 01/10/2006
122(1)Section 10 (appointment of judges of Supreme Court) is amended as follows.U.K.
(2)In subsection (1)—
(a)for “President of the Family Division or Vice-Chancellor” substitute “ President of the Queen's Bench Division, President of the Family Division or Chancellor of the High Court ”;
(b)after “may” insert “ , on the recommendation of the Lord Chancellor, ”.
(3)In subsection (2) after “may” insert “ , on the recommendation of the Lord Chancellor, ”.
(4)In subsection (3)(a) for “President of the Family Division or Vice-Chancellor” substitute “ President of the Queen's Bench Division, President of the Family Division or Chancellor of the High Court ”.
(5)For subsection (4) substitute—
“(4)A person appointed—
(a)to any of the offices mentioned in subsection (1),
(b)as a Lord Justice of Appeal, or
(c)as a puisne judge of the High Court,
shall take the required oaths as soon as may be after accepting office.
(5)In the case of a person appointed to the office of Lord Chief Justice, the required oaths are to be taken in the presence of all of the following—
(a)the Master of the Rolls;
(b)the President of the Queen's Bench Division;
(c)the President of the Family Division;
(d)the Chancellor of the High Court.
(6)Where subsection (5) applies but there is a vacancy in one or more (but not all) of the offices mentioned in that subsection, the required oaths are to be taken in the presence of the holders of such of the offices as are not vacant.
(7)In the case of a person appointed other than to the office of Lord Chief Justice, the required oaths are to be taken in the presence of—
(a)the Lord Chief Justice, or
(b)a judicial office holder (as defined in section 109(4) of the Constitutional Reform Act 2005) nominated by him for this purpose.
(8)In this section “required oaths” means—
(a)the oath of allegiance, and
(b)the judicial oath,
as set out in the Promissory Oaths Act 1868.”
123(1)Section 11 (tenure of office) is amended as follows.U.K.
(2)In subsection (1) omit “except the Lord Chancellor”.
(3)After subsection (3) insert—
“(3A)It is for the Lord Chancellor to recommend to Her Majesty the exercise of the power of removal under subsection (3).”
(4)In subsection (9)(a) for “the President of the Family Division and the Vice-Chancellor,” substitute “ the President of the Queen's Bench Division, the President of the Family Division and the Chancellor of the High Court, ”.
Yn ddilys o 03/04/2006
124U.K.In section 12 (salaries etc of judges of Supreme Court), in subsection (1) omit “, other than the Lord Chancellor,”.
125(1)Section 13 (precedence of judges of Supreme Court) is amended as follows.U.K.
(2)For subsections (2) and (3) substitute—
“(2)Subject to subsection (1)(b), the President of the Queen's Bench Division shall rank next after the Master of the Rolls.
(2A)The President of the Family Division shall rank next after the President of the Queen's Bench Division.
(3)The Chancellor of the High Court shall rank next after the President of the Family Division.”
(3)In subsection (4) for “Vice-Chancellor” substitute “ Chancellor of the High Court ”.
Yn ddilys o 03/04/2006
126U.K.In section 44 (extraordinary functions of judges of High Court), in subsection (2) omit “the Lord Chancellor,”.
Yn ddilys o 03/04/2006
127U.K.In section 56B (allocation of cases in criminal division), in subsection (1) for “with the concurrence of the Lord Chancellor” substitute “ after consulting the Lord Chancellor ”.
Yn ddilys o 03/04/2006
128(1)Section 57 (Court of Appeal: sittings and vacations) is amended as follows.U.K.
(2)In subsection (2) after “Lord Chancellor” insert “ after consulting the Lord Chief Justice ”.
(3)After subsection (4) insert—
“(5)The Lord Chief Justice may nominate a judicial office holder (as defined in section 109(4) of the Constitutional Reform Act 2005) to exercise his functions under this section.”
Yn ddilys o 03/04/2006
129(1)Section 61 (distribution of business among Divisions) is amended as follows).U.K.
(2)In subsection (3)—
(a)for “Lord Chancellor may” substitute “ Lord Chief Justice may, with the concurrence of the Lord Chancellor, ”;
(b)in paragraph (b) for “appears to him” substitute “ appears to the Lord Chief Justice and the Lord Chancellor ”.
(3)After subsection (8) insert—
“(9)The Lord Chief Justice may nominate a judicial office holder (as defined in section 109(4) of the Constitutional Reform Act 2005) to exercise his functions under subsection (3).”
Yn ddilys o 03/04/2006
130(1)Section 63 (business assigned to specially nominated judges) is amended as follows.U.K.
(2)In subsection (1) for “by the Lord Chancellor” substitute “ by the Lord Chief Justice after consulting the Lord Chancellor ”.
(3)In subsection (2) for “Lord Chancellor” substitute “ Lord Chief Justice, after consulting the Lord Chancellor, to be ”.
(4)After subsection (3) insert—
“(4)The Lord Chief Justice may nominate a judicial office holder (as defined in section 109(4) of the Constitutional Reform Act 2005) to exercise his functions under subsection (1) or (2).”
Yn ddilys o 03/04/2006
131(1)Section 68 (exercise of jurisdiction of High Court otherwise than by judges of that court) is amended as follows.U.K.
(2)In subsection (1)(a) for “Lord Chancellor may” substitute “ Lord Chief Justice may, after consulting the Lord Chancellor, ”.
(3)In subsection (6) for “by the Lord Chancellor” substitute “ by the Lord Chief Justice after consulting the Lord Chancellor ”.
(4)After subsection (7) insert—
“(8)The Lord Chief Justice may nominate a judicial office holder (as defined in section 109(4) of the Constitutional Reform Act 2005) to exercise his functions under subsections (1)(a) and (6).”
Yn ddilys o 03/04/2006
132(1)Section 71 (High Court: sittings and vacations) is amended as follows.U.K.
(2)In subsection (2) after “Lord Chancellor” insert “ after consulting the Lord Chief Justice ”.
(3)After subsection (5) insert—
“(6)The Lord Chief Justice may nominate a judicial office holder (as defined in section 109(4) of the Constitutional Reform Act 2005) to exercise his functions under this section.”
Yn ddilys o 03/04/2006
133(1)Section 74 (appeals and committals for sentence) is amended as follows.U.K.
(2)After subsection (5) insert—
“(5A)Before exercising any functions under subsection (4), the Lord Chancellor must consult the Lord Chief Justice.”
(3)After subsection (7) insert—
“(8)The Lord Chief Justice may nominate a judicial office holder (as defined in section 109(4) of the Constitutional Reform Act 2005) to exercise his functions under this section.”
Yn ddilys o 03/04/2006
134(1)Section 78 (Crown Court: sittings) is amended as follows.U.K.
(2)In subsection (3) after “Lord Chancellor” insert “ after consulting the Lord Chief Justice ”.
(3)After subsection (3) insert—
“(4)The Lord Chief Justice may nominate a judicial office holder (as defined in section 109(4) of the Constitutional Reform Act 2005) to exercise his functions under this section.”
Yn ddilys o 03/04/2006
135(1)Section 82 (duties of officers of Crown Court) is amended as follows.U.K.
(2)In subsection (1) after “Lord Chancellor” insert “ after consulting the Lord Chief Justice ”.
(3)After subsection (2) insert—
“(3)The Lord Chief Justice may nominate a judicial office holder (as defined in section 109(4) of the Constitutional Reform Act 2005) to exercise his functions under this section.”
Yn ddilys o 03/04/2006
136U.K.Omit section 84(8) (rules of court for Crown Court etc to be made by statutory instrument).
Yn ddilys o 03/04/2006
137(1)Section 86 (the Crown Court Rule Committee) is amended as follows.U.K.
(2)In subsection (1) for “by the Lord Chancellor together with any four or more of the following persons, namely—” substitute “ by a committee known as the Crown Court Rule Committee, which is to consist of the following persons— ”.
(3)For subsections (2) to (4) substitute—
“(2)The members of the Crown Court Rule Committee, other than those eligible to act by virtue of their office, are appointed under subsection (3) or (4).
(3)The Lord Chief Justice must appoint the persons referred to in paragraphs (b), (c) and (e) of subsection (1), after consulting the Lord Chancellor.
(4)The Lord Chancellor must appoint the persons referred to in paragraphs (f) and (g) of subsection (1), after consulting the following—
(a)the Lord Chief Justice;
(b)any authorised body with members who are eligible for appointment under the relevant paragraph.
(5)A person is to be appointed under subsection (3) or (4) for such period as the Lord Chancellor determines after consulting the Lord Chief Justice.
(6)The Lord Chief Justice may nominate a judicial office holder (as defined in section 109(4) of the Constitutional Reform Act 2005) to exercise his functions under this section.”
Yn ddilys o 03/04/2006
138U.K.After section 86 insert—
“86AProcess for making rules of court under section 84
(1)Crown Court rules must be—
(a)signed by a majority of the members of the Crown Court Rule Committee, and
(b)submitted to the Lord Chancellor.
(2)The Lord Chancellor may allow or disallow rules so made.
(3)If the Lord Chancellor disallows rules, he must give the Committee written reasons for doing so.
(4)Rules so made and allowed by the Lord Chancellor—
(a)come into force on such day as the Lord Chancellor directs, and
(b)are to be contained in a statutory instrument to which the Statutory Instruments Act 1946 applies as if the instrument contained rules made by a Minister of the Crown.
(5)A statutory instrument containing Crown Court rules is subject to annulment in pursuance of a resolution of either House of Parliament.
(6)In this section and section 86B “Crown Court rules” means rules of court made under section 84.
86BRules to be made if required by Lord Chancellor
(1)This section applies if the Lord Chancellor gives the Crown Court Rule Committee written notice that he thinks it is expedient for Crown Court rules to include provision that would achieve a purpose specified in the notice.
(2)The Committee must make such Crown Court rules as it considers necessary to achieve the specified purpose.
(3)Those rules must be—
(a)made within a reasonable period after the Lord Chancellor gives notice to the Committee;
(b)made in accordance with section 86A.”
Yn ddilys o 03/04/2006
139(1)Section 91 (deputies and temporary appointments) is amended as follows.U.K.
(2)In subsection (1)—
(a)for “Lord Chancellor” in the first place substitute “ Lord Chief Justice, after consulting the Lord Chancellor, ”;
(b)in paragraph (a) omit “or III”;
(c)for “Lord Chancellor thinks fit” substitute “ Lord Chief Justice may, after consulting the Lord Chancellor, think fit ”.
(3)After subsection (1) insert—
“(1A)If it appears to the Lord Chancellor that it is expedient to do so in order to facilitate the disposal of business in the Senior Courts, he may appoint a person—
(a)to act as a deputy for any person holding an office listed in column 1 of Part 3 of Schedule 2; or
(b)to act as a temporary additional officer in any such office,
during such period or on such occasions as the Lord Chancellor may think fit.”
(4)After subsection (6) insert—
“(7)The Lord Chief Justice may nominate a judicial office holder (as defined in section 109(4) of the Constitutional Reform Act 2005) to exercise his functions under subsection (1).”
Yn ddilys o 03/04/2006
140(1)Section 92 (tenure of office) is amended as follows.U.K.
(2)In subsection (5) after “Lord Chancellor” insert “ with the concurrence of the Lord Chief Justice ”.
(3)In subsection (6) after “also” insert “ , with the concurrence of the Lord Chief Justice, ”.
(4)After subsection (7) insert—
“(8)It is for the Lord Chancellor to recommend to Her Majesty the exercise of any power under subsection (7).”
Yn ddilys o 03/04/2006
141(1)Section 96 (Central Office) is amended as follows.U.K.
(2)In subsection (1) leave out “Lord Chancellor may” and insert “ Lord Chief Justice may, with the concurrence of the Lord Chancellor, ”.
(3)In subsection (2) for “of the Lord Chancellor under this section” substitute “ under subsection (1) ”.
(4)After subsection (2) insert—
“(3)The Lord Chief Justice may nominate a judicial office holder (as defined in section 109(4) of the Constitutional Reform Act 2005) to exercise his functions under this section.”
142U.K.In section 98 (judges' clerks and secretaries), in subsection (1) for “the President of the Family Division and the Vice-Chancellor” substitute “ the President of the Queen's Bench Division, the President of the Family Division and the Chancellor of the High Court ”.
Yn ddilys o 03/04/2006
143(1)Section 99 (district registries) is amended as follows.U.K.
(2)In subsection (1) after “Lord Chancellor may” insert “ , after consulting the Lord Chief Justice, ”.
(3)After subsection (2) insert—
“(3)The Lord Chief Justice may nominate a judicial office holder (as defined in section 109(4) of the Constitutional Reform Act 2005) to exercise his functions under this section.”
Yn ddilys o 03/04/2006
144(1)Section 104 (district probate registries) is amended as follows.U.K.
(2)In subsection (1) after “Lord Chancellor may” insert “ , after consulting the Lord Chief Justice, ”.
(3)After subsection (2) insert—
“(3)The Lord Chief Justice may nominate a judicial office holder (as defined in section 109(4) of the Constitutional Reform Act 2005) to exercise his functions under this section.”
Yn ddilys o 03/04/2006
145(1)Section 131 (conveyancing counsel of Supreme Court) is amended as follows.U.K.
(2)In subsection (2) after “Lord Chancellor” insert “ with the concurrence of the Lord Chief Justice ”.
(3)After subsection (2) insert—
“(3)The Lord Chief Justice may nominate a judicial office holder (as defined in section 109(4) of the Constitutional Reform Act 2005) to exercise his functions under this section.”
Yn ddilys o 03/04/2006
146U.K.In section 151 (interpretation), in subsection (1) for the definition of “senior judge” substitute—
““senior judge”, where the reference is to the senior judge of a Division, means the president of that Division;”.
Yn ddilys o 03/04/2006
Administration of Justice Act 1982 (c. 53)U.K.
147U.K.The Administration of Justice Act 1982 is amended as follows.
148(1)Section 25 (regulations as to deposit and registration of wills) is amended as follows.U.K.
(2)In subsection (4) after “Lord Chancellor” insert “ after consulting the Lord Chief Justice of England and Wales ”.
(3)After subsection (8) insert—
“(9)The Lord Chief Justice may nominate a judicial office holder (as defined in section 109(4) of the Constitutional Reform Act 2005) to exercise his functions under subsection (4).”
Yn ddilys o 03/04/2006
Representation of the People Act 1983 (c. 2)U.K.
149U.K.In section 161 of the Representation of the People Act 1983 (justices of the peace guilty of corrupt practice)—
(a)after “Lord Chancellor” insert “ and the Lord Chief Justice ”;
(b)after “Scotland,” insert “ to ”.
Yn ddilys o 03/04/2006
Mental Health Act 1983 (c. 20)U.K.
150U.K.The Mental Health Act 1983 is amended as follows.
151(1)Section 93 (judicial authorities and Court of Protection) is amended as follows.U.K.
(2)In subsection (1) for “Lord Chancellor shall” substitute “ Lord Chief Justice shall, after consulting the Lord Chancellor, ”.
(3)In subsection (3) for “Lord Chancellor” substitute “ Lord Chief Justice ”.
(4)In subsection (4) after “Lord Chancellor may” insert “ , with the concurrence of the Lord Chief Justice, ”.
(5)After subsection (4) insert—
“(5)The Lord Chief Justice may nominate a judicial office holder (as defined in section 109(4) of the Constitutional Reform Act 2005) to exercise his functions under subsection (1), (3) or (4).”
152U.K.In section 94 (exercise of the judge's functions: the patient), in subsection (1) omit “by the Lord Chancellor or”.
153U.K.In section 96 (powers of the judge as to the patient's property and affairs), in subsection (3) omit “the Lord Chancellor or”.
154U.K.In section 104 (general powers of the judge with respect to proceedings), in subsection (3) omit “the Lord Chancellor or” in both places.
155U.K.In section 105 (appeals), in subsection (2) omit “from any decision of the Lord Chancellor or”.
156(1)Section 108 (general provisions as to rules under Part 7) is amended as follows.U.K.
(2)For subsection (1) substitute—
“(1)Rules under section 106(5) are to be made by the Lord Chancellor after consulting the Lord Chief Justice.”
(3)After subsection (2) insert—
“(3)The Lord Chief Justice may nominate a judicial office holder (as defined in section 109(4) of the Constitutional Reform Act 2005) to exercise his functions under this section.”
(4)Paragraph 16 of Schedule 1 also amends section 108.
157(1)Section 111 (construction of references in other Acts) is amended as follows.U.K.
(2)In subsection (1) omit “by the Lord Chancellor or”.
(3)In subsection (2) omit “the Lord Chancellor,”.
(4)In subsection (4)—
(a)in paragraph (a) omit “the Lord Chancellor or”;
(b)in paragraph (b) omit “the Lord Chancellor,”.
158(1)Schedule 2 (mental health review tribunals) is amended as follows.U.K.
(2)In paragraph 1(b) and (c) omit “after consultation with the Secretary of State”.
(3)After paragraph 1 insert—
“1AAs part of the selection process for an appointment under paragraph 1(b) or (c) the Judicial Appointments Commission shall consult the Secretary of State.”
Prospective
Pastoral Measure 1983 (1983 No. 1)U.K.
159(1)Section 81(2) of the Pastoral Measure 1983 (application to benefices in the patronage of the Crown or the Duke of Cornwall) is amended as follows.U.K.
(2)In paragraph (a)—
(a)for the words from the beginning to “benefices” substitute “ any consent under the foregoing subsection in respect of a benefice or benefices ”;
(b)omit the words from “, or a” to “books”;
(c)omit “last-mentioned”.
(3)Omit paragraph (b).
Yn ddilys o 03/04/2006
County Courts Act 1984 (c. 28)U.K.
160U.K.The County Courts Act 1984 is amended as follows.
161(1)Section 2 (county court districts etc) is amended as follows.U.K.
(2)In subsection (1) after “Lord Chancellor may” insert “ , after consulting the Lord Chief Justice, ”.
(3)In subsection (3) after “given” insert “ , after consulting the Lord Chief Justice, ”.
(4)After subsection (4) insert—
“(5)The Lord Chief Justice may nominate a judicial office holder (as defined in section 109(4) of the Constitutional Reform Act 2005) to exercise his functions under subsection (1) or (3).”
162(1)Section 3 (places and times of sittings) is amended as follows.U.K.
(2)In subsection (1) after “given” insert “ , after consulting the Lord Chief Justice, ”.
(3)After subsection (4) insert—
“(5)The Lord Chief Justice may nominate a judicial office holder (as defined in section 109(4) of the Constitutional Reform Act 2005) to exercise his functions under subsection (1).”
163(1)Section 5 (judges of county courts) is amended as follows.U.K.
(2)In subsection (1) for “Lord Chancellor shall” substitute “ Lord Chief Justice shall, after consulting the Lord Chancellor, ”.
(3)In subsection (2) for “or on behalf of the Lord Chancellor” substitute “ the Lord Chief Justice after consulting the Lord Chancellor ”.
(4)In subsection (3) for “Lord Chancellor considers desirable” substitute “ Lord Chief Justice considers desirable after consulting the Lord Chancellor ”.
(5)In subsection (4)(a) for “Lord Chancellor may direct” substitute “ Lord Chief Justice may, after consulting the Lord Chancellor, direct ”.
(6)After subsection (4) insert—
“(5)The Lord Chief Justice may nominate a judicial office holder (as defined in section 109(4) of the Constitutional Reform Act 2005) to exercise his functions under this section.”
164(1)Section 11 (tenure of office) is amended as follows.U.K.
(2)In subsection (5) after “by the Lord Chancellor” insert “ , but only with the concurrence of the Lord Chief Justice ”.
(3)In subsection (6) after “Lord Chancellor may” insert “ , with the concurrence of the Lord Chief Justice, ”.
165U.K.In section 12 (records of proceedings to be kept by district judges), after subsection (2) insert—
“(3)The Lord Chancellor must consult the Lord Chief Justice before making regulations under this section.
(4)The Lord Chief Justice may nominate a judicial office holder (as defined in section 109(4) of the Constitutional Reform Act 2005) to exercise his functions under this section.”
166(1)Section 26 (districts for Admiralty purposes) is amended as follows.U.K.
(2)In subsection (1)—
(a)after “Lord Chancellor” insert “ and the Lord Chief Justice ”;
(b)for “him” substitute “ the Lord Chancellor ”.
(3)After subsection (4) insert—
“(5)The Lord Chief Justice may nominate a judicial office holder (as defined in section 109(4) of the Constitutional Reform Act 2005) to exercise his functions under this section.”
167U.K.In section 38 (remedies available in county courts), in subsection (5) for “by the Lord Chancellor under this section” substitute “ under this section by the Lord Chancellor after consulting the Lord Chief Justice ”.
168(1)Section 61 (right of audience by direction) is amended as follows.U.K.
(2)In subsection (1) after “Lord Chancellor may” insert “ , with the concurrence of the Lord Chief Justice, ”.
(3)After subsection (4) insert—
“(5)The Lord Chief Justice may nominate a judicial office holder (as defined in section 109(4) of the Constitutional Reform Act 2005) to exercise his functions under this section.”
169U.K.Omit section 74A (practice directions).
170U.K.In section 145 (power to raise monetary limits), after subsection (2) insert—
“(2A)It is for the Lord Chancellor to recommend to Her Majesty the making of an Order under subsection (1).”
Yn ddilys o 03/04/2006
Matrimonial and Family Proceedings Act 1984 (c. 42)U.K.
171U.K.The Matrimonial and Family Proceedings Act 1984 is amended as follows.
172(1)Section 33 (jurisdiction of county courts in matrimonial cases) is amended as follows.U.K.
(2)In subsections (1) and (4) after “Lord Chancellor may” insert “ , with the concurrence of the Lord Chief Justice, ”.
(3)After subsection (5) insert—
“(6)The Lord Chief Justice may nominate a judicial office holder (as defined in section 109(4) of the Constitutional Reform Act 2005) to exercise his functions under this section.”
173(1)Section 36 (assignment of circuit judges to family proceedings) is amended as follows.U.K.
(2)That section becomes subsection (1) of section 36.
(3)In that subsection, for “Lord Chancellor may direct” substitute “ Lord Chief Justice may, after consulting the Lord Chancellor, direct ”.
(4)After that subsection insert—
“(2)The Lord Chief Justice may nominate a judicial office holder (as defined in section 109(4) of the Constitutional Reform Act 2005) to exercise his functions under this section.”
174(1)Section 42 (county court proceedings in principal registry of Family Division) is amended as follows.U.K.
(2)In subsection (2)(a) for “may direct” substitute “ may, after consulting the Lord Chief Justice, direct ”.
(3)After subsection (6) insert—
“(7)The Lord Chief Justice may nominate a judicial office holder (as defined in section 109(4) of the Constitutional Reform Act 2005) to exercise his functions under this section.”
Yn ddilys o 03/04/2006
Inheritance Tax Act 1984 (c. 51)U.K.
175U.K.The Inheritance Tax Act 1984 is amended as follows.
176U.K.In section 256 (regulations about accounts etc), for subsection (3A) substitute—
“(3A)Regulations under this section may only be made—
(a)in relation to England and Wales, after consulting the Lord Chancellor;
(b)in relation to Scotland, after consulting the Scottish Ministers;
(c)in relation to Northern Ireland, after consulting the Lord Chief Justice of Northern Ireland.
(3B)The Lord Chief Justice of Northern Ireland may nominate any of the following to exercise his functions under subsection (3A)—
(a)the holder of one of the offices listed in Schedule 1 to the Justice (Northern Ireland) Act 2002;
(b)a Lord Justice of Appeal (as defined in section 88 of that Act).”
177(1)Section 257 (form etc of accounts) is amended as follows.U.K.
(2)In subsection (3) for “Lord Chancellor” substitute “ Lord Chief Justice of Northern Ireland ”.
(3)After subsection (3) insert—
“(4)The Lord Chief Justice of Northern Ireland may nominate any of the following to exercise his functions under subsection (3)—
(a)the holder of one of the offices listed in Schedule 1 to the Justice (Northern Ireland) Act 2002;
(b)a Lord Justice of Appeal (as defined in section 88 of that Act).”
Yn ddilys o 03/04/2006
Reserve Forces (Safeguard of Employment) Act 1985 (c. 17)U.K.
178(1)Schedule 2 to the Reserve Forces (Safeguard of Employment) Act 1985 (Reinstatement Committees and Umpires) is amended as follows.U.K.
(2)In paragraph 2 (membership of Reinstatement Committees), for “Lord Chief Justice of Northern Ireland” substitute “ Lord Chancellor ”.
Yn ddilys o 03/04/2006
Transport Act 1985 (c. 67)U.K.
179(1)Schedule 4 to the Transport Act 1985 (constitution, powers and proceedings of the Transport Tribunal) is amended as follows.U.K.
(2)In paragraph 3 (tenure of office), after sub-paragraph (3) insert—
“(3A)The Lord Chancellor may remove a judicial member from office under sub-paragraph (3) only with the concurrence of the appropriate senior judge.
(3B)The appropriate senior judge is the Lord Chief Justice of England and Wales, unless the judicial member who is to be removed exercises functions wholly or mainly in Scotland, in which case it is the Lord President of the Court of Session.”
(3)In paragraph 10 (the president)—
(a)in sub-paragraph (1) for “Lord Chancellor” substitute “ Lord Chief Justice ”;
(b)after sub-paragraph (1) insert—
“(1A)Before exercising his functions under sub-paragraph (1) the Lord Chief Justice must—
(a)consult the Lord Chancellor, and
(b)obtain the agreement of the Lord President of the Court of Session.”;
(c)after sub-paragraph (3) insert—
“(4)The Lord Chief Justice may nominate a judicial office holder (as defined in section 109(4) of the Constitutional Reform Act 2005) to exercise his functions under sub-paragraph (1).
(5)The Lord President of the Court of Session may nominate a judge of the Court of Session who is a member of the First or Second Division of the Inner House of that Court to exercise his functions under sub-paragraph (1A)(b).”
Yn ddilys o 03/04/2006
Housing Act 1985 (c. 68)U.K.
180U.K.The Housing Act 1985 is amended as follows.
181U.K.Omit section 111 (secure tenancies: county court rules and directions).
182U.K.In section 181 (right to buy: jurisdiction of county court), omit subsections (4) and (5) (rules and directions).
183U.K.In section 572 (assistance for owners of defective housing: jurisdiction of county court), omit subsections (4) to (6) (rules and directions).
Yn ddilys o 03/04/2006
Merchant Shipping (Formal Investigations) Rules 1985 (S.I. 1985/1001)U.K.
184U.K.In rule 17 of the Merchant Shipping (Formal Investigations) Rules 1985 (application to Northern Ireland), omit sub-paragraph (a).
Yn ddilys o 03/04/2006
Insolvency Act 1986 (c. 45)U.K.
185U.K.The Insolvency Act 1986 is amended as follows.
186(1)Section 117 (High Court and county court jurisdiction) is amended as follows.U.K.
(2)In subsection (4) for “may by order” substitute “ may, with the concurrence of the Lord Chief Justice, by order ”.
(3)After subsection (7) insert—
“(8)The Lord Chief Justice may nominate a judicial office holder (as defined in section 109(4) of the Constitutional Reform Act 2005) to exercise his functions under this section.”
187(1)Section 374 (insolvency districts) is amended as follows.U.K.
(2)In subsection (1) after “Lord Chancellor may” insert “ , with the concurrence of the Lord Chief Justice, ”.
(3)In subsection (2) after “Lord Chancellor” insert “ and the Lord Chief Justice ”.
(4)After subsection (4) insert—
“(5)The Lord Chief Justice may nominate a judicial office holder (as defined in section 109(4) of the Constitutional Reform Act 2005) to exercise his functions under this section.”
188(1)Section 411 (company insolvency rules) is amended as follows.U.K.
(2)In subsection (1)(a) after “Secretary of State” insert “ and, in the case of rules that affect court procedure, with the concurrence of the Lord Chief Justice ”.
(3)After subsection (6) insert—
“(7)The Lord Chief Justice may nominate a judicial office holder (as defined in section 109(4) of the Constitutional Reform Act 2005) to exercise his functions under this section.”
189(1)Section 412 (individual insolvency rules (England and Wales) is amended as follows.U.K.
(2)In subsection after “Secretary of State” insert “ and, in the case of rules that affect court procedure, with the concurrence of the Lord Chief Justice ”.
(3)After subsection (5) insert—
“(6)The Lord Chief Justice may nominate a judicial office holder (as defined in section 109(4) of the Constitutional Reform Act 2005) to exercise his functions under this section.”
190(1)Section 413 (Insolvency Rules committee) is amended as follows.U.K.
(2)In subsection (3) for “by the Lord Chancellor” substitute “ in accordance with subsection (3A) or (3B) ”.
(3)After subsection (3) insert—
“(3A)The Lord Chief Justice must appoint the persons referred to in paragraphs (a) to (d) of subsection (3), after consulting the Lord Chancellor.
(3B)The Lord Chancellor must appoint the persons referred to in paragraphs (e) to (g) of subsection (3), after consulting the Lord Chief Justice.”
(4)After subsection (4) insert—
“(5)The Lord Chief Justice may nominate a judicial office holder (as defined in section 109(4) of the Constitutional Reform Act 2005) to exercise his functions under this section.”
191(1)Section 420 (insolvent partnerships) is amended as follows.U.K.
(2)In subsection (1) after “Secretary of State” insert “ and the Lord Chief Justice ”.
(3)In subsection (2) after “Lord Chancellor” insert “ and the Lord Chief Justice ”.
(4)After subsection (3) insert—
“(4)The Lord Chief Justice may nominate a judicial office holder (as defined in section 109(4) of the Constitutional Reform Act 2005) to exercise his functions under this section.”
192(1)Section 421 (insolvent estates of deceased persons) is amended as follows.U.K.
(2)In subsection (1) after “Secretary of State” insert “ and the Lord Chief Justice ”.
(3)In subsection (2) after “Lord Chancellor” insert “ and the Lord Chief Justice ”.
(4)After subsection (4) insert—
“(5)The Lord Chief Justice may nominate a judicial office holder (as defined in section 109(4) of the Constitutional Reform Act 2005) to exercise his functions under this section.”
Yn ddilys o 03/04/2006
Coroners Act 1988 (c. 13)U.K.
193U.K.The Coroners Act 1988 is amended as follows.
194(1)Section 3 (terms on which coroners hold office) is amended as follows.U.K.
(2)For subsection (4) substitute—
“(4)The Lord Chancellor may, with the agreement of the Lord Chief Justice, remove any coroner from office for inability or misbehaviour.”
(3)In subsection (5) for “, wilful neglect of his duty or misbehaviour in the discharge of his duty” substitute “ or wilful neglect of his duty ”.
195U.K.In section 33 (savings), in subsection (2)(a) omit “the Lord Chancellor or”.
Yn ddilys o 03/04/2006
Criminal Justice Act 1988 (c. 33)U.K.
196U.K.In Schedule 12 to the Criminal Justice Act 1988 (assessors of compensation for miscarriages of justice), for paragraph 6 (power of removal) substitute—
“6(1)The exercise of the power conferred by paragraph 5 is subject to the following provisions of this paragraph.
(2)In the case of a person who qualifies for appointment under—
(a)paragraph (1)(a), or
(b)paragraph (1)(d) by virtue of holding or having held judicial office in England and Wales,
that power shall only be exercisable with the consent of the Lord Chancellor, which may only be given with the concurrence of the Lord Chief Justice of England and Wales.
(3)In the case of a person who qualifies for appointment under—
(a)paragraph (1)(b), or
(b)paragraph (1)(d) by virtue of holding or having held judicial office in Scotland,
that power shall only be exercisable with the consent of the Lord President of the Court of Session.
(4)In the case of a person who qualifies for appointment under—
(a)paragraph (1)(c), or
(b)paragraph (1)(d) by virtue of holding or having held judicial office in Northern Ireland,
that power shall only be exercisable with the consent of the Lord Chancellor, which may only be given with the concurrence of the Lord Chief Justice of Northern Ireland.”
Yn ddilys o 03/04/2006
Finance Act 1988 (c. 39)U.K.
197U.K.In section 134 (General Commissioners for Northern Ireland), omit subsection (4).
Yn ddilys o 03/04/2006
Copyright, Designs and Patents Act 1988 (c. 48)U.K.
198U.K.The Copyright, Designs and Patents Act 1988 is amended as follows.
199(1)Section 146 (membership of the copyright tribunal) is amended as follows.U.K.
(2)After subsection (6) insert—
“(7)The Lord Chancellor may exercise his powers to remove a person under subsection (3) or to appoint a person under subsection (4) only with the concurrence of the appropriate senior judge.
(8)The appropriate senior judge is the Lord Chief Justice of England and Wales, unless—
(a)the person to be removed exercises functions wholly or mainly in Scotland, in which case it is the Lord President of the Court of Session, or
(b)the person to be removed exercises functions wholly or mainly in Northern Ireland, in which case it is the Lord Chief Justice of Northern Ireland.
(9)The Lord Chief Justice of England and Wales may nominate a judicial office holder (as defined in section 109(4) of the Constitutional Reform Act 2005) to exercise his functions under subsection (7) in relation to the appointment of a person under subsection (4).
(10)The Lord President of the Court of Session may nominate a judge of the Court of Session who is a member of the First or Second Division of the Inner House of that Court to exercise his functions under subsection (7) in relation to the appointment of a person under subsection (4).
(11)The Lord Chief Justice of Northern Ireland may nominate any of the following to exercise his functions under subsection (7) in relation to the appointment of a person under subsection (4)—
(a)the holder of one of the offices listed in Schedule 1 to the Justice (Northern Ireland) Act 2002;
(b)a Lord Justice of Appeal (as defined in section 88 of that Act).”
200(1)Section 287 (patents county courts: special jurisdiction) is amended as follows.U.K.
(2)In subsection (1) after “Lord Chancellor may” insert “ , with the concurrence of the Lord Chief Justice, ”.
(3)After subsection (5) insert—
“(6)The Lord Chief Justice of England and Wales may nominate a judicial office holder (as defined in section 109(4) of the Constitutional Reform Act 2005) to exercise his functions under this section.”
201(1)Section 291 (proceedings in patents county court) is amended as follows.U.K.
(2)In subsection (1) for “Lord Chancellor shall” substitute “ Lord Chief Justice shall, after consulting the Lord Chancellor, ”.
(3)After subsection (5) insert—
“(6)The Lord Chief Justice may nominate a judicial office holder (as defined in section 109(4) of the Constitutional Reform Act 2005) to exercise his functions under subsection (1).”
202(1)Section 292 (rights and duties of registered patent agents in relation to proceedings in patents courts) is amended as follows.
(2)After subsection (2) insert—
“(2A)The Lord Chancellor may make regulations under subsection (2) only with the concurrence of the Lord Chief Justice.”
(3)After subsection (6) insert—
“(7)The Lord Chief Justice may nominate a judicial office holder (as defined in section 109(4) of the Constitutional Reform Act 2005) to exercise his functions under this section.”
Yn ddilys o 03/04/2006
Children Act 1989 (c. 41)U.K.
203U.K.The Children Act 1989 is amended as follows.
204(1)Section 7 (welfare reports) is amended as follows.U.K.
(2)In subsection (2) after “Lord Chancellor may” insert “ , after consulting the Lord Chief Justice, ”.
(3)After subsection (5) insert—
“(6)The Lord Chief Justice may nominate a judicial office holder (as defined in section 109(4) of the Constitutional Reform Act 2005) to exercise his functions under subsection (2).”
205(1)Section 92 (jurisdiction of the courts) is amended as follows.U.K.
(2)In subsection (9) after “Lord Chancellor may” insert “ , after consulting the Lord Chief Justice, ”.
(3)In subsection (10) after “Lord Chancellor thinks expedient” insert “ , after consulting the Lord Chief Justice, ”.
(4)After subsection (10) insert—
“(10A)The Lord Chief Justice may nominate a judicial office holder (as defined in section 109(4) of the Constitutional Reform Act 2005) to exercise his functions under subsection (9) or (10).”
206(1)Section 94 (appeals) is amended as follows.U.K.
(2)In subsection (10) after “Lord Chancellor may” insert “ , after consulting the Lord Chief Justice, ”.
(3)After subsection (11) insert—
“(12)The Lord Chief Justice may nominate a judicial office holder (as defined in section 109(4) of the Constitutional Reform Act 2005) to exercise his functions under subsection (10).”
207U.K.In section 96 (evidence given by, or with respect to, children), in subsection (3) after “Lord Chancellor may” insert “ , with the concurrence of the Lord Chief Justice, ”.
208(1)In section 97 (privacy for children involved in certain proceedings).U.K.
(2)In subsection (4) after “requires it” insert “ and, in the case of the Lord Chancellor, if the Lord Chief Justice agrees ”.
(3)After subsection (8) insert—
“(9)The Lord Chief Justice may nominate a judicial office holder (as defined in section 109(4) of the Constitutional Reform Act 2005) to exercise his functions under subsection (4).”
209(1)In Schedule 1 (financial provision for children), paragraph 5 (maximum lump sum payable for maintenance of child by order of magistrates court) is amended as follows.U.K.
(2)In sub-paragraph (2) after “Lord Chancellor may” substitute “ , after consulting the Lord Chief Justice, ”.
(3)After sub-paragraph (6) insert—
“(7)The Lord Chief Justice may nominate a judicial office holder (as defined in section 109(4) of the Constitutional Reform Act 2005) to exercise his functions under this paragraph.”
210(1)Schedule 11 (jurisdiction) is amended as follows.U.K.
(2)In paragraph 1 (commencement of proceedings) after “Lord Chancellor may” in each place insert “ , after consulting the Lord Chief Justice, ”.
(3)In paragraph 2 (transfer of proceedings)—
(a)in sub-paragraph (1) after “Lord Chancellor may” insert “ , after consulting the Lord Chief Justice, ”;
(b)in sub-paragraph (5) after “Lord Chancellor thinks appropriate” insert “ , after consulting the Lord Chief Justice, ”.
(4)In paragraph 3 (hearings by a single justice), in sub-paragraph (1) after “Lord Chancellor may” insert “ , after consulting the Lord Chief Justice, ”.
(5)In paragraph 4 (general)—
(a)in sub-paragraph 5(a) after “Lord Chancellor considers expedient” insert “ , after consulting the Lord Chief Justice, ”.
(b)after sub-paragraph (5) insert—
“(6)The Lord Chief Justice may nominate a judicial office holder (as defined in section 109(4) of the Constitutional Reform Act 2005) to exercise his functions under this Part of this Schedule.”
Courts and Legal Services Act 1990 (c. 41)U.K.
Yn ddilys o 03/04/2006
211U.K.The Courts and Legal Services Act 1990 is amended as follows.
212(1)Section 1 (allocation of business between High Court and county courts) is amended as follows.U.K.
(2)After subsection (1) insert—
“(1A)An order under subsection (1)(a) or (b) may be made only with the concurrence of the Lord Chief Justice.”
(3)In subsection (9) for “the President of the Family Division, the Vice-Chancellor” substitute “ the President of the Queen's Bench Division, the President of the Family Division, the Chancellor of the High Court ”.
(4)After subsection (12) insert—
“(13)The Lord Chief Justice may nominate a judicial office holder (as defined in section 109(4) of the Constitutional Reform Act 2005) to exercise his functions under this section.”
Yn ddilys o 03/04/2006
213U.K.In section 9 (allocation of family proceedings which are within the jurisdiction of the county courts), in subsection (1) for the words from the beginning to “Family Division,” substitute “ The President of the Family Division may, after consulting the Lord Chancellor, ”.
Yn ddilys o 03/04/2006
214(1)Section 11 (representation in certain county court cases) is amended as follows.U.K.
(2)In subsection (1) after “Lord Chancellor may” insert “ , with the concurrence of the Lord Chief Justice, ”.
(3)Omit subsection (10).
(4)After subsection (11) insert—
“(12)The Lord Chief Justice may nominate a judicial office holder (as defined in section 109(4) of the Constitutional Reform Act 2005) to exercise his functions under subsection (1) or (2).”
Yn ddilys o 03/04/2006
215(1)Section 73 (delegation of certain administrative functions of Master of the Rolls) is amended as follows.U.K.
(2)In subsection (3)—
(a)for “Lord Chancellor may” substitute “ Lord Chief Justice may, with the concurrence of the Lord Chancellor, ”;
(b)for “Lord Chancellor considers” substitute “ Lord Chief Justice and Lord Chancellor consider ”.
(3)After subsection (5) insert—
“(6)The Lord Chief Justice may nominate a judicial office holder (as defined in section 109(4) of the Constitutional Reform Act 2005) to exercise his functions under subsection (3).”
216U.K.In section 119 (interpretation), in subsection (1) in the definition of “designated judge” for “the President of the Family Division or the Vice-Chancellor” substitute “ the President of the Queen's Bench Division, the President of the Family Division or the Chancellor of the High Court ”.
Yn ddilys o 03/04/2006
Armed Forces Act 1991 (c. 62)U.K.
217U.K.In Schedule 1 to the Armed Forces Act 1991 (assessors of compensation for miscarriages of justice) for paragraph 6 (power of removal) substitute—
“6(1)The exercise of the power conferred by paragraph 5 is subject to the following provisions of this paragraph.
(2)In the case of a person who qualifies for appointment under—
(a)paragraph (1)(a), or
(b)paragraph (1)(d) by virtue of holding or having held judicial office in England and Wales,
that power shall only be exercisable with the consent of the Lord Chancellor, which may only be given with the concurrence of the Lord Chief Justice of England and Wales.
(3)In the case of a person who qualifies for appointment under—
(a)paragraph (1)(b), or
(b)paragraph (1)(d) by virtue of holding or having held judicial office in Scotland,
that power shall only be exercisable with the consent of the Lord President of the Court of Session.
(4)In the case of a person who qualifies for appointment under—
(a)paragraph (1)(c), or
(b)paragraph (1)(d) by virtue of holding or having held judicial office in Northern Ireland,
that power shall only be exercisable with the consent of the Lord Chancellor, which may only be given with the concurrence of the Lord Chief Justice of Northern Ireland.”
Yn ddilys o 03/04/2006
Child Support Act 1991 (c. 48)U.K.
218U.K.The Child Support Act 1991 is amended as follows.
219(1)Section 8 (role of the courts with respect to maintenance of children) is amended as follows.U.K.
(2)After subsection (5) insert—
“(5A)The Lord Chancellor may make an order under subsection (5) only with the concurrence of the Lord Chief Justice.”
(3)After subsection (11) insert—
“(12)The Lord Chief Justice may nominate a judicial office holder (as defined in section 109(4) of the Constitutional Reform Act 2005) to exercise his functions under this section.”
220U.K.In section 45 (jurisdiction of courts in certain proceedings under the Act), after subsection (7) insert—
“(8)The functions of the Lord Chancellor under this section may be exercised only after consultation with the Lord Chief Justice.
(9)The Lord Chief Justice may nominate a judicial office holder (as defined in section 109(4) of the Constitutional Reform Act 2005) to exercise his functions under this section.”
221(1)Schedule 4 (Child Support Commissioners) is amended as follows.
(2)In paragraph 1 (tenure of office), after sub-paragraph (3) insert—
“(3A)The Lord Chancellor may remove a Child Support Commissioner under sub-paragraph (3) only with the concurrence of the appropriate senior judge.
(3B)The appropriate senior judge is the Lord Chief Justice of England and Wales, unless the Commissioner exercises functions wholly or mainly in Scotland, in which case it is the Lord President of the Court of Session.”
(3)In paragraph 8 (application of Schedule to Northern Ireland), before sub-paragraph (b) insert—
“(ab)paragraph 1(3A) and (3B) were omitted;”.
Yn ddilys o 03/04/2006
Land Drainage Act 1991 (c. 59)U.K.
222(1)Section 31 of the Land Drainage Act 1991 (composition and incidental powers of the Agricultural Land Tribunal) is amended as follows.U.K.
(2)After subsection (1) insert—
“(1A)Before drawing up, or revising, a panel under subsection (1), the Lord Chancellor must consult the Lord Chief Justice.”
(3)After subsection (5) insert—
“(6)The Lord Chief Justice may nominate a judicial office holder (as defined in section 109(4) of the Constitutional Reform Act 2005) to exercise his functions under this section.”
Yn ddilys o 03/04/2006
Tribunals and Inquiries Act 1992 (c. 53)U.K.
223U.K.The Tribunal and Inquiries Act 1992 is amended as follows.
224U.K.In section 6 (appointment of chairmen of certain tribunals), omit subsection (9).
225(1)In section 7 (concurrence required for removal of members of certain tribunals), subsection (1) is amended as follows.U.K.
(2)Omit “, other than the Lord Chancellor,”.
(3)In paragraphs (a) to (c) after “Lord Chancellor” in each place insert “ (unless he is the Minister terminating the person's membership), the Lord Chief Justice of England and Wales, ”.
(4)In paragraph (d) after “Lord Chancellor” insert “ (unless he is the Minister terminating the person's membership) and the Lord Chief Justice of England and Wales ”.
Judicial Pensions and Retirement Act 1993 (c. 8)U.K.
Yn ddilys o 03/04/2006
226U.K.The Judicial Pensions and Retirement Act 1993 is amended as follows.
Yn ddilys o 03/04/2006
227(1)Section 2 (the judicial officer's entitlement to a pension) is amended as follows.U.K.
(2)After subsection (3) insert—
“(3A)Where the appropriate minister is the Lord Chancellor, he must, before satisfying himself as mentioned in subsection (3)(b)—
(a)consult the Lord Chief of Justice of England and Wales, if the person in question holds office in England and Wales;
(b)consult the Lord Chief of Justice of Northern Ireland, if the person in question holds office in Northern Ireland.”
(3)After subsection (8) insert—
“(9)The Lord Chief Justice of England and Wales may nominate a judicial office holder (as defined in section 109(4) of the Constitutional Reform Act 2005) to exercise his functions under this section.
(10)The Lord Chief Justice of Northern Ireland may nominate any of the following to exercise his functions under this section—
(a)the holder of one of the offices listed in Schedule 1 to the Justice (Northern Ireland) Act 2002;
(b)a Lord Justice of Appeal (as defined in section 88 of that Act).”
Yn ddilys o 03/04/2006
228(1)Section 26 (retirement date for holders of certain judicial offices) is amended as follows.U.K.
(2)For “appropriate minister” in subsections (5) and (6) substitute “ appropriate person ”.
(3)In subsection (7)—
(a)in paragraph (a) omit “, unless he is the Lord Chancellor”;
(b)in paragraph (b) omit “, unless he is the Lord Chancellor”.
(4)In subsection (12), after the definition of “appointed day” insert—
““the appropriate person” means—
(a)the appropriate Minister in a case which falls within paragraph (a) of the definition of the expression in section 30;
(b)in relation to any judicial office whose jurisdiction is exercised exclusively in relation to England and Wales, the Lord Chief Justice of England and Wales;
(c)in relation to any judicial office whose jurisdiction is exercised exclusively in relation to Northern Ireland, the Lord Chief Justice of Northern Ireland.”
(5)After subsection (12) insert—
“(13)Where the Lord Chief Justice of England or Wales or the Lord Chief Justice of Northern Ireland is the appropriate person, he must obtain the concurrence of the Lord Chancellor before exercising any functions under this section.
(14)The Lord Chief Justice of England or Wales may nominate a judicial office holder (as defined in section 109(4) of the Constitutional Reform Act 2005) to exercise his functions under this section.
(15)The Lord Chief Justice of Northern Ireland may nominate any of the following to exercise his functions under this section—
(a)the holder of one of the offices listed in Schedule 1 to the Justice (Northern Ireland) Act 2002;
(b)a Lord Justice of Appeal (as defined in section 88 of that Act).”
229U.K.In Schedule 1 (offices which may be qualifying judicial offices) in Part 1 (judges) for the entries “President of the Family Division” and “Vice-Chancellor” substitute— “President of the Queen's Bench Division President of the Family Division Chancellor of the High Court ”.
Yn ddilys o 03/04/2006
230U.K.In Schedule 5 (retirement provisions: the relevant offices), in the second entry omit “, other than the Lord Chancellor”.
Yn ddilys o 03/04/2006
Bail (Amendment) Act 1993 (c. 26)U.K.
231U.K.In section 1 of the Bail (Amendment) Act 1993 (prosecution right of appeal), in subsection (12) in the definition of “magistrates' court” and “court” for “designated” to the end substitute “ designated in accordance with section 67 or section 139 of the Extradition Act 2003 ”.
Yn ddilys o 03/04/2006
Welsh Language Act 1993 (c. 38)U.K.
232(1)Section 23 of the Welsh Language Act 1993 (oaths and affirmations) is amended as follows.U.K.
(2)That section becomes subsection (1) of section 23.
(3)In that subsection after “Lord Chancellor may” insert “ , after consulting the Lord Chief Justice of England and Wales, ”.
(4)After that subsection insert—
“(2)The Lord Chief Justice may nominate a judicial office holder (as defined in section 109(4) of the Constitutional Reform Act 2005) to exercise his functions under this section.”
Yn ddilys o 03/04/2006
Local Government (Wales) Act 1994 (c. 19)U.K.
233(1)Section 55 of the Local Government (Wales) Act 1994 (magistrates' courts, justices of the peace etc) is amended as follows.U.K.
(2)In subsection (1)—
(a)after “Lord Chancellor may” insert “ , after consulting the Lord Chief Justice, ”;
(b)for “he thinks necessary or expedient” substitute “ the Lord Chancellor thinks necessary or expedient, after consulting the Lord Chief Justice, ”.
(3)In subsection (3)—
(a)after “Lord Chancellor may” insert “ , after consulting the Lord Chief Justice, ”;
(b)for “appears to him expedient” substitute “ appears to the Lord Chancellor to be expedient, after consulting the Lord Chief Justice, ”.
234U.K.After subsection (5) insert—
“(6)The Lord Chief Justice may nominate a judicial office holder (as defined in section 109(4) of the Constitutional Reform Act 2005) to exercise his functions under this section.”
Yn ddilys o 03/04/2006
Value Added Tax Act 1994 (c. 23)U.K.
235U.K.The Value Added Tax Act 1994 is amended as follows.
236U.K.In section 86 (appeals to the Court of Appeal), after subsection (2) insert—
“(2A)Before making an order under this section that relates to England and Wales, the Lord Chancellor must consult the Lord Chief Justice of England and Wales.
(2B)Before making an order under this section that relates to Northern Ireland, the Lord Chancellor must consult the Lord Chief Justice of Northern Ireland.
(2C)The Lord Chief Justice of England and Wales may nominate a judicial office holder (as defined in section 109(4) of the Constitutional Reform Act 2005) to exercise his functions under this section.
(2D)The Lord Chief Justice of Northern Ireland may nominate any of the following to exercise his functions under this section—
(a)the holder of one of the offices listed in Schedule 1 to the Justice (Northern Ireland) Act 2002;
(b)a Lord Justice of Appeal (as defined in section 88 of that Act).”
237(1)Schedule 12 (constitution and procedure of VAT tribunals) is amended as follows.U.K.
(2)In paragraph 3 (tenure of office of President)—
(a)after sub-paragraph (5) insert—
“(5A)The Lord Chancellor may remove a person from office under sub-paragraph (4), or nominate a person under sub-paragraph (5), only with the concurrence of all of the following—
(a)the Lord Chief Justice of England and Wales;
(b)the Lord President of the Court of Session;
(c)the Lord Chief Justice of Northern Ireland.”;
(b)after sub-paragraph (8) insert—
“(9)The Lord Chief Justice of England and Wales may nominate a judicial office holder (as defined in section 109(4) of the Constitutional Reform Act 2005) to exercise his functions under sub-paragraph (5A) in relation to the nomination of a person under sub-paragraph (5).
(10)The Lord President of the Court of Session may nominate a judge of the Court of Session who is a member of the First or Second Division of the Inner House of that Court to exercise his functions under sub-paragraph (5A) in relation to the nomination of a person under sub-paragraph (5).
(11)The Lord Chief Justice of Northern Ireland may nominate any of the following to exercise his functions under sub-paragraph (5A) in relation to the nomination of a person under sub-paragraph (5)—
(a)the holder of one of the offices listed in Schedule 1 to the Justice (Northern Ireland) Act 2002;
(b)a Lord Justice of Appeal (as defined in section 88 of that Act).”
(3)In paragraph 4—
(a)that paragraph becomes sub-paragraph (1) of paragraph 4;
(b)after that sub-paragraph insert—
“(2)The powers of the Lord Chancellor under sub-paragraph (1) may be exercised—
(a)in relation to England and Wales only after consulting the Lord Chief Justice of England and Wales;
(b)in relation to Northern Ireland only after consulting the Lord Chief Justice of Northern Ireland.
(3)The Lord Chief Justice of England and Wales may nominate a judicial office holder (as defined in section 109(4) of the Constitutional Reform Act 2005) to exercise his functions under this paragraph.
(4)The Lord Chief Justice of Northern Ireland may nominate any of the following to exercise his functions under this paragraph—
(a)the holder of one of the offices listed in Schedule 1 to the Justice (Northern Ireland) Act 2002;
(b)a Lord Justice of Appeal (as defined in section 88 of that Act).”
(4)In paragraph 7 (membership of panels)—
(a)in sub-paragraph (3)(c) for “Lord Chief Justice of Northern Ireland” substitute “ Lord Chancellor ”;
(b)for sub-paragraph (7) substitute—
“(7A)The Lord Chancellor may, with the concurrence of the Lord Chief Justice of England and Wales, remove from office on the ground of incapacity or misbehaviour a chairman of VAT Tribunals appointed under sub-paragraph (3)(a).
(7B)The Lord President of the Court of Session may remove from office on the ground of incapacity or misbehaviour a chairman of VAT Tribunals appointed under sub-paragraph (3)(b).”
Yn ddilys o 03/04/2006
Trade Marks Act 1994 (c. 26)U.K.
238U.K.In section 77 of the Trade Marks Act 1994 (persons appointed to hear and determine appeals), after subsection (4) insert—
“(5)The Lord Chancellor may remove a person from office under subsection (3)(c) only with the concurrence of the appropriate senior judge.
(6)The appropriate senior judge is the Lord Chief Justice of England and Wales, unless—
(a)the person to be removed exercises functions wholly or mainly in Scotland, in which case it is the Lord President of the Court of Session, or
(b)the person to be removed exercises functions wholly or mainly in Northern Ireland, in which case it is the Lord Chief Justice of Northern Ireland.”
Yn ddilys o 03/04/2006
Merchant Shipping Act 1995 (c. 21)U.K.
239U.K.In section 297 of the Merchant Shipping Act 1995 (wreck commissioners), after subsection (3) insert—
“(3A)The Lord Chancellor may remove a wreck commissioner from office only with the concurrence of—
(a)the Lord Chief Justice of England and Wales, or
(b)if the commissioner was appointed to act in Northern Ireland, the Lord Chief Justice of Northern Ireland.”
Yn ddilys o 03/04/2006
Reserve Forces Act 1996 (c. 14)U.K.
240U.K.The Reserve Forces Act 1996 is amended as follows.
241U.K.In section 90 (appointment of panel of chairmen), after subsection (1) insert—
“(1A)The Lord Chancellor may not appoint a member of the panel unless the appropriate senior judge concurs.”
242U.K.In section 91 (appointment of panel of ordinary members), after subsection (2) insert—
“(2A)The Lord Chancellor may not appoint a member of the panel unless the appropriate senior judge concurs.”
243(1)Section 92 (membership of tribunals etc) is amended as follows.U.K.
(2)In subsection (1) for “by the Lord Chancellor” substitute “ in accordance with subsection (2) ”.
(3)For subsections (2) and (3) substitute—
“(2)The chairman and other members are to be selected as follows—
(a)in the case of an appeal tribunal which is to sit in England and Wales, by the Lord Chief Justice of England and Wales after consulting the Lord Chancellor;
(b)in the case of an appeal tribunal which is to sit in Scotland, by the Lord President of the Court of Session;
(c)in the case of an appeal tribunal which is to sit in Northern Ireland, by the Lord Chief Justice of Northern Ireland after consulting the Lord Chancellor.
(3)Where a tribunal which is hearing an appeal in respect of a determination of an application under regulations under section 78 or 79 requests it, a serving or retired officer of any regular service or reserve force may be appointed in accordance with subsection (4) to advise the tribunal on any relevant service matters.
(4)The officer is to be appointed as follows—
(a)in the case of an appeal tribunal which is sitting in England and Wales, by the Lord Chief Justice of England and Wales after consulting the Lord Chancellor;
(b)in the case of an appeal tribunal which is sitting in Scotland, by the Lord President of the Court of Session;
(c)in the case of an appeal tribunal which is sitting in Northern Ireland, the Lord Chancellor with the concurrence of the Lord Chief Justice of Northern Ireland.”
244U.K.After section 92 insert—
“92ASections 90 to 92: supplementary
(1)In sections 90 and 91 “appropriate senior judge”, in relation to the appointment of a person to be a member of a panel, means—
(a)if the person is to be appointed to exercise functions wholly or mainly in relation to England and Wales, the Lord Chief Justice of England and Wales;
(b)if the person is to be appointed to exercise functions wholly or mainly in relation to Scotland, the Lord President of the Court of Session;
(c)if the person is to be appointed to exercise functions wholly or mainly in relation to Northern Ireland, the Lord Chief Justice of Northern Ireland.
(2)The Lord Chief Justice of England and Wales may nominate a judicial office holder (as defined in section 109(4) of the Constitutional Reform Act 2005) to exercise any of his functions under sections 90 to 92.
(3)The Lord President of the Court of Session may nominate a judge of the Court of Session may nominate a judge of the Court of Session who is a member of the First or Second Division of the Inner House of that Court to exercise any of his functions under sections 90 to 92.
(4)The Lord Chief Justice of Northern Ireland may nominate any of the following to exercise any of his functions under sections 90 to 92—
(a)the holder of one of the offices listed in Schedule 1 to the Justice (Northern Ireland) Act 2002;
(b)a Lord Justice of Appeal (as defined in section 88 of that Act).”
Yn ddilys o 03/04/2006
Employment Tribunals Act 1996 (c. 17)U.K.
245U.K.The Employment Tribunals Act 1996 is amended as follows.
246(1)Section 22 (membership of appeal tribunal) is amended as follows.U.K.
(2)In subsection (1)(a)—
(a)for “by the Lord Chancellor” substitute “ by the Lord Chief Justice, after consulting the Lord Chancellor, ”;
(b)omit “(other than the Lord Chancellor)”.
(3)In subsection (3) for “Lord Chancellor shall, after consultation with the Lord President of the Court of Session,” substitute “ Lord Chief Justice shall ”.
(4)After subsection (3) insert—
“(3A)The Lord Chief Justice must not make an appointment under subsection (3) unless—
(a)he has consulted the Lord Chancellor, and
(b)the Lord President of the Court of Session agrees.”
(5)After subsection (4) insert—
“(5)The Lord Chief Justice may nominate a judicial office holder (as defined in section 109(4) of the Constitutional Reform Act 2005) to exercise his functions under this section.
(6)The Lord President of the Court of Session may nominate a judge of the Court of Session who is a member of the First or Second Division of the Inner House of that Court to exercise his functions under subsection (3A)(b).”
247(1)Section 23 (temporary membership) is amended as follows.U.K.
(2)In subsection (1) for “Lord Chancellor” substitute “ Lord Chief Justice ”.
(3)In subsection (2)(a) for “Lord Chancellor” substitute “ Lord Chief Justice ”.
(4)After subsection (5) insert—
“(6)The functions conferred on the Lord Chief Justice by the preceding provisions of this section may be exercised only after consulting the Lord Chancellor.
(7)The functions conferred on the Lord Chancellor by subsection (3) may be exercised only after consultation with the Lord Chief Justice.
(8)The Lord Chief Justice may nominate a judicial office holder (as defined in section 109(4) of the Constitutional Reform Act 2005) to exercise his functions under this section.”
248(1)Section 24 (temporary additional judicial membership) is amended as follows.U.K.
(2)For subsection (1) substitute—
“(1)This section applies if both of the following conditions are met—
(a)the Lord Chancellor thinks that it is expedient, after consulting the Lord Chief Justice, for a qualified person to be appointed to be a temporary additional judge of the Appeal Tribunal in order to facilitate in England and Wales the disposal of business in the Appeal Tribunal;
(b)the Lord Chancellor requests the Lord Chief Justice to make such an appointment.
(1A)The Lord Chief Justice may, after consulting the Lord Chancellor, appoint a qualified person as mentioned in subsection (1)(a).
(1B)An appointment under this section is—
(a)for such period, or
(b)on such occasions,
as the Lord Chief Justice determines, after consulting the Lord Chancellor.”
(3)In subsection (2) for “subsection (1)” substitute “ this section ”.
(4)After subsection (3) insert—
“(4)The Lord Chief Justice may nominate a judicial office holder (as defined in section 109(4) of the Constitutional Reform Act 2005) to exercise his functions under this section.”
249U.K.In section 25 (tenure of appointed members) after subsection (4) insert—
“(5)The Lord Chancellor may declare an appointed member's office vacant under subsection (4) only with the concurrence of the appropriate senior judge.
(6)The appropriate senior judge is the Lord Chief Justice of England and Wales, unless the member whose office is to be declared vacant exercises functions wholly or mainly in Scotland, in which case it is the Lord President of the Court of Session.”
Yn ddilys o 03/04/2006
Arbitration Act 1996 (c. 23)U.K.
250U.K.In section 105 of the Arbitration Act 1996 (jurisdiction of High Court and county court), after subsection (3) insert—
“(3A)The Lord Chancellor must consult the Lord Chief Justice of England and Wales or the Lord Chief Justice of Northern Ireland (as the case may be) before making an order under this section.
(3B)The Lord Chief Justice of England and Wales may nominate a judicial office holder (as defined in section 109(4) of the Constitutional Reform Act 2005) to exercise his functions under this section.
(3C)The Lord Chief Justice of Northern Ireland may nominate any of the following to exercise his functions under this section—
(a)the holder of one of the offices listed in Schedule 1 to the Justice (Northern Ireland) Act 2002;
(b)a Lord Justice of Appeal (as defined in section 88 of that Act).”
Yn ddilys o 03/04/2006
Criminal Procedure and Investigations Act 1996 (c. 25)U.K.
251U.K.In section 19 of the Criminal Procedure and Investigations Act 1996 (rules of court), in subsection (3) for the words from “with any modifications” to the end substitute “ or such provision with modifications ”.
Yn ddilys o 03/04/2006
Family Law Act 1996 (c. 27)U.K.
252U.K.The Family Law Act 1996 is amended as follows.
253(1)Section 57 (jurisdiction of the courts) is amended as follows.U.K.
(2)In subsections (3), (4) and (5) after “Lord Chancellor may” insert “ , after consulting the Lord Chief Justice, ”.
(3)In subsection (7) after “Lord Chancellor thinks appropriate” insert “ , after consulting the Lord Chief Justice ”.
(4)In subsection (9) after “Lord Chancellor may” insert “ , after consulting the Lord Chief Justice, ”.
(5)In subsection (10) after “Lord Chancellor thinks expedient” insert “ , after consulting the Lord Chief Justice, ”.
(6)After subsection (11) insert—
“(12)The Lord Chief Justice may nominate a judicial office holder (as defined in section 109(4) of the Constitutional Reform Act 2005) to exercise his functions under this section.”
254(1)Section 61 (appeals) is amended as follows.U.K.
(2)In subsection (5) after “Lord Chancellor may” insert “ , after consulting the Lord Chief Justice, ”.
(3)After subsection (6) insert—
“(7)The Lord Chief Justice may nominate a judicial office holder (as defined in section 109(4) of the Constitutional Reform Act 2005) to exercise his functions under this section.”
Yn ddilys o 03/04/2006
Defamation Act 1996 (c. 31)U.K.
255U.K.In section 9 of the Defamation Act 1996 (meaning of summary relief), after subsection (2) insert—
“(2A)The Lord Chancellor must consult the Lord Chief Justice of England and Wales before making any order under subsection (1)(c) in relation to England and Wales.
(2B)The Lord Chancellor must consult the Lord Chief Justice of Northern Ireland before making any order under subsection (1)(c) in relation to Northern Ireland.
(2C)The Lord Chief Justice may nominate a judicial office holder (as defined in section 109(4) of the Constitutional Reform Act 2005) to exercise his functions under this section.
(2D)The Lord Chief Justice of Northern Ireland may nominate any of the following to exercise his functions under this section—
(a)the holder of one of the offices listed in Schedule 1 to the Justice (Northern Ireland) Act 2002;
(b)a Lord Justice of Appeal (as defined in section 88 of that Act).”
Yn ddilys o 03/04/2006
Housing Act 1996 (c. 52)U.K.
256U.K.The Housing Act 1996 is amended as follows.
257U.K.In section 138 (introductory tenancies: jurisdiction of county court), omit subsections (4) to (6) (rules and directions).
258U.K.In section 143N (demoted tenancies: jurisdiction of county court), omit subsections (5) to (7) (rules and directions).
Yn ddilys o 03/04/2006
Education Act 1996 (c. 56)U.K.
259U.K.In section 334 of the Education Act 1996 (Special Educational Needs Tribunal: President and members), in subsection (3)—
(a)after “Lord Chancellor” in the first place insert “ and of the Lord Chief Justice ”;
(b)after “Lord Chancellor may” insert “ , with the concurrence of the Lord Chief Justice, ”.
Yn ddilys o 03/04/2006
Deregulation (Model Appeal Provisions) Order 1996 (S.I. 1996/1678)U.K.
260U.K.In the Schedule (model rules for appeals) to the Deregulation (Model Appeal Provisions) Order 1996, after paragraph 6(3) insert—
“(3A)The Lord Chancellor may exercise his power under sub-paragraph (3) to remove a person appointed to the panel of chairmen for England and Wales only with the concurrence of the Lord Chief Justice.”
Yn ddilys o 03/04/2006
Civil Procedure Act 1997 (c. 12)U.K.
261U.K.The Civil Procedure Act 1997 is amended as follows.
262U.K.In section 1 (civil procedure rules), in subsection (3) (as amended by section 82 of the Courts Act 2003) omit “or alter”.
263(1)Section 2 (Civil Procedure Rule Committee) is amended as follows.U.K.
(2)For subsection (1) substitute—
“(1)Civil Procedure Rules are to be made by a committee known as the Civil Procedure Rule Committee, which is to consist of the following persons—
(a)the Head of Civil Justice;
(b)the Deputy Head of Civil Justice (if there is one);
(c)the persons currently appointed in accordance with subsections (1A) and (1B).
(1A)The Lord Chief Justice must appoint the persons falling within paragraphs (a) to (d) of subsection (2).
(1B)The Lord Chancellor must appoint the persons falling within paragraphs (e) to (g) of subsection (2).”
(3)In subsection (2) for “The Lord Chancellor must appoint” substitute “ The persons to be appointed in accordance with subsections (1A) and (1B) are ”.
(4)For subsection (3) substitute—
“(3)Before appointing a person in accordance with subsection (1A), the Lord Chief Justice must consult the Lord Chancellor.”
(5)In subsection (4) for “under paragraph (e) or (f) of subsection (2), the Lord Chancellor must consult” substitute “ in accordance with subsection (1B), the Lord Chancellor must consult the Lord Chief Justice and, if the person falls within paragraph (e) or (f) of subsection (2), must also consult ”.
(6)After subsection (8) insert—
“(9)The Lord Chief Justice may nominate a judicial office holder (as defined in section 109(4) of the Constitutional Reform Act 2005) to exercise his functions under this section.”
264(1)Section 2A (power to change certain requirements relating to Committee) is amended as follows.U.K.
(2)In subsection (1) for paragraph (a) substitute—
“(a)amend section 2(2), (3) or (4), and”.
(3)For subsection (2) substitute—
“(2)The Lord Chancellor may make an order under this section only with the concurrence of the Lord Chief Justice.
(2A)Before making an order under this section the Lord Chancellor must consult the following persons—
(a)the Head of Civil Justice;
(b)the Deputy Head of Civil Justice (if there is one).
(2B)The Lord Chief Justice may nominate a judicial office holder (as defined in section 109(4) of the Constitutional Reform Act 2005) to exercise his functions under this section.”
265(1)Section 3 (process for making Civil Procedure rules) (as amended by section 85 of the Courts Act 2003 (c. 39)) is amended as follows.U.K.
(2)For subsections (3) and (4) substitute—
“(3)The Lord Chancellor may allow or disallow Rules so made.
(4)If the Lord Chancellor disallows Rules, he must give the Committee written reasons for doing so.”
(3)In subsection (5) for “, as allowed or altered” substitute “ and allowed ”.
(4)In subsection (6) omit “Subject to subsection (7),”.
(5)Omit subsection (7).
266U.K.After section 3 insert—
“3ARules to be made if required by Lord Chancellor
(1)This section applies if the Lord Chancellor gives the Civil Procedure Rules Committee written notice that he thinks it is expedient for Civil Procedure Rules to include provision that would achieve a purpose specified in the notice.
(2)The Committee must make such Rules as it considers necessary to achieve the specified purpose.
(3)Those rules must be—
(a)made within a reasonable period after the Lord Chancellor gives notice to the Committee;
(b)made in accordance with section 3.”
267(1)Section 4 (power to make consequential amendments) (as amended by section 85 of the Courts Act 2003 (c. 39)) is amended as follows.U.K.
(2)In subsections (1) and (2) after “Lord Chancellor may” insert “ , after consulting the Lord Chief Justice, ”.
(3)After subsection (5) insert—
“(6)The Lord Chief Justice may nominate a judicial office holder (as defined in section 109(4) of the Constitutional Reform Act 2005) to exercise his functions under subsection (1) or (2).”
268(1)Section 6 (Civil Justice Council) is amended as follows.U.K.
(2)After subsection (2) insert—
“(2A)The Lord Chancellor must decide the following questions, after consulting the Lord Chief Justice—
(a)how many members of the Council are to be drawn from each of the groups mentioned in subsection (2);
(b)how many other members the Council is to have.
(2B)It is for—
(a)the Lord Chief Justice to appoint members of the judiciary to the Council, after consulting the Lord Chancellor;
(b)the Lord Chancellor to appoint other persons to the Council.”
(3)After subsection (4) insert—
“(5)The Lord Chief Justice may nominate a judicial office holder (as defined in section 109(4) of the Constitutional Reform Act 2005) to exercise his functions under this section.”
Yn ddilys o 03/04/2006
Plant Varieties Act 1997 (c. 66)U.K.
269(1)Schedule 3 to the Plant Varieties Act 1997 (Plant Varieties and Seeds Tribunal) is amended as follows.U.K.
(2)In paragraph 4 (chairman of the Tribunal for proceedings in Northern Ireland), in sub-paragraph (1) for “Lord Chief Justice of Northern Ireland” substitute “ Lord Chancellor ”.
(3)In paragraph 5 (duration of appointment)—
(a)in sub-paragraph (5) for “paragraph 2, 3 or 4” substitute “ paragraph 2 or 3 ”;
(b)after sub-paragraph (5) insert—
“(5A)Where the appointing authority is the Lord Chancellor, the power conferred by sub-paragraph (5) may be exercised only with the concurrence of the Lord Chief Justice of England and Wales.”
(4)In paragraph 7 (the panels), in sub-paragraph (2) for the words in brackets substitute “ (which makes it necessary to obtain the concurrence of the Lord Chancellor and certain judicial office holders to dismissals in certain cases) ”.
(5)In paragraph 16 (interpretation), in paragraph (c) of the definition of “appointing authority” for “Lord Chief Justice of Northern Ireland” substitute “ Lord Chancellor ”.
Yn ddilys o 03/04/2006
Reserve Forces Appeal Tribunals Rules 1997 (S.I. 1997/798)U.K.
270(1)Rule 7 of the Reserve Forces Appeal Tribunals Rules 1997 (acknowledgement and registration of appeal and request to select tribunal) is amended as follows.U.K.
(2)In sub-paragraph (c), for the words from “Lord Chancellor” to “Northern Ireland” substitute “ person who under section 92(2) of the Act is authorised to do so, ”.
Yn ddilys o 03/04/2006
Social Security Act 1998 (c. 14)U.K.
271U.K.The Social Security Act 1998 is amended as follows.
272(1)Section 6 (panel for appointment to appeal tribunals) is amended as follows.U.K.
(2)In subsection (2) for the words from “such” to the end substitute “ persons appointed by the Lord Chancellor ”.
(3)After subsection (3) insert—
“(3A)As part of the selection process for the appointment of a medical practitioner as a member of the panel, the Judicial Appointments Commission shall consult the Chief Medical Officer.”
(4)In subsection (5) after “misbehaviour” insert “ ; but the Lord Chancellor may remove such a person only with the concurrence of the appropriate senior judge ”.
(5)After subsection (5) insert—
“(5A)The appropriate senior judge is the Lord Chief Justice of England and Wales, unless the person to be removed exercises functions wholly or mainly in Scotland, in which case it is the Lord President of the Court of Session.”
273In Schedule 1 (Appeal Tribunals: supplementary provisions), in paragraph 1(3) (tenure of office) after “by the Lord Chancellor” insert “ , with the concurrence of the Lord Chief Justice and the Lord President of the Court of Session, ”.
274In Schedule 4 (Social Security Commissioners), in paragraph 5 (removal) after sub-paragraph (1) insert—
“(1A)The Lord Chancellor may remove a person under sub-paragraph (1) only with the concurrence of the appropriate senior judge.
(1B)The appropriate senior judge is the Lord Chief Justice of England and Wales, unless the person exercises functions wholly or mainly in Scotland, in which case it is the Lord President of the Court of Session.”
Yn ddilys o 03/04/2006
Data Protection Act 1998 (c. 29)U.K.
275(1)Schedule 6 to the Data Protection Act 1998 (appeal proceedings) (as amended by paragraph 2 of Schedule 4 to the Freedom of Information Act 2000 (c. 36)) is amended as follows.U.K.
(2)In paragraph 2 (designation of persons to hear appeals in national security cases), after sub-paragraph (2) insert—
“(3)The Lord Chancellor may make, or revoke, a designation under this paragraph only with the concurrence of all of the following—
(a)the Lord Chief Justice;
(b)the Lord President of the Court of Session;
(c)the Lord Chief Justice of Northern Ireland.
(4)The Lord Chief Justice of England and Wales may nominate a judicial office holder (as defined in section 109(4) of the Constitutional Reform Act 2005) to exercise his functions under sub-paragraph (3) so far as they relate to a designation under this paragraph.
(5)The Lord President of the Court of Session may nominate a judge of the Court of Session who is a member of the First or Second Division of the Inner House of that Court to exercise his functions under sub-paragraph (3) so far as they relate to a designation under this paragraph.
(6)The Lord Chief Justice of Northern Ireland may nominate any of the following to exercise his functions under sub-paragraph (3) so far as they relate to a designation under this paragraph—
(a)the holder of one of the offices listed in Schedule 1 to the Justice (Northern Ireland) Act 2002;
(b)a Lord Justice of Appeal (as defined in section 88 of that Act).”
(3)In paragraph 3 (constitution of Tribunal in national security cases) (as substituted by paragraph 2 of Schedule 4 to the Freedom of Information Act 2000)—
(a)that paragraph becomes sub-paragraph (1) of paragraph 3;
(b)after that sub-paragraph insert—
“(2)The Lord Chancellor may designate a person to preside under this paragraph only with the concurrence of all of the following—
(a)the Lord Chief Justice of England and Wales;
(b)the Lord President of the Court of Session;
(c)the Lord Chief Justice of Northern Ireland.
(3)The Lord Chief Justice of England and Wales may nominate a judicial office holder (as defined in section 109(4) of the Constitutional Reform Act 2005) to exercise his functions under this paragraph.
(4)The Lord President of the Court of Session may nominate a judge of the Court of Session who is a member of the First or Second Division of the Inner House of that Court to exercise his functions under this paragraph.
(5)The Lord Chief Justice of Northern Ireland may nominate any of the following to exercise his functions under this paragraph—
(a)the holder of one of the offices listed in Schedule 1 to the Justice (Northern Ireland) Act 2002;
(b)a Lord Justice of Appeal (as defined in section 88 of that Act).”
Yn ddilys o 03/04/2006
Crime and Disorder Act 1998 (c. 37)U.K.
276U.K.The Crime and Disorder Act 1998 (powers of magistrates' courts exercisable by single justice etc) is amended as follows.
277(1)Section 10 (appeals against parenting orders) is amended as follows.U.K.
(2)In subsection (6) after “Lord Chancellor may” insert “ , with the concurrence of the Lord Chief Justice, ”.
(3)After subsection (7) insert—
“(8)The Lord Chief Justice may nominate a judicial office holder (as defined in section 109(4) of the Constitutional Reform Act 2005) to exercise his functions under this section.”
Yn ddilys o 03/04/2006
Human Rights Act 1998 (c. 42)U.K.
278U.K.In section 18 of the Human Rights Act 1998 (appointment to ECHR), after subsection (7) insert—
“(7A)The following paragraphs apply to the making of an order under subsection (7) in relation to any holder of a judicial office listed in subsection (1)(a)—
(a)before deciding what transitional provision it is appropriate to make, the person making the order must consult the Lord Chief Justice of England and Wales;
(b)before making the order, that person must consult the Lord Chief Justice of England and Wales.
(7B)The following paragraphs apply to the making of an order under subsection (7) in relation to any holder of a judicial office listed in subsection (1)(c)—
(a)before deciding what transitional provision it is appropriate to make, the person making the order must consult the Lord Chief Justice of Northern Ireland;
(b)before making the order, that person must consult the Lord Chief Justice of Northern Ireland.
(7C)The Lord Chief Justice of England and Wales may nominate a judicial office holder (within the meaning of section 109(4) of the Constitutional Reform Act 2005) to exercise his functions under this section.
(7D)The Lord Chief Justice of Northern Ireland may nominate any of the following to exercise his functions under this section—
(a)the holder of one of the offices listed in Schedule 1 to the Justice (Northern Ireland) Act 2002;
(b)a Lord Justice of Appeal (as defined in section 88 of that Act).”
Access to Justice Act 1999 (c. 22)U.K.
Yn ddilys o 03/04/2006
279U.K.The Access to Justice Act 1999 is amended as follows.
280(1)Section 56 (power to prescribe alternative destination of appeals) is amended as follows.U.K.
(2)In subsection (4) for paragraphs (c) and (d) substitute—
“(c)the President of the Queen's Bench Division,
(d)the President of the Family Division, and
(e)the Chancellor of the High Court.”
(3)After subsection (7) insert—
“(8)The Lord Chief Justice may nominate a judicial office holder (as defined in section 109(4) of the Constitutional Reform Act 2005) to exercise his functions under this section.”
Yn ddilys o 03/04/2006
281(1)Section 68 (judges holding office in European or international courts) is amended as follows.U.K.
(2)In subsection (2), in the definition of “relevant international court” for “for the purposes of this section by the Lord Chancellor or the Secretary of State” substitute “ in relation to the holder of a United Kingdom judicial office by the appropriate Minister ”.
(3)In subsection (6) for “subsection (5)” substitute “ this section ”.
(4)After subsection (7) insert—
“(8)The Lord Chancellor may exercise functions under this section in relation to the holder of a United Kingdom judicial office specified in paragraph (a) of the definition in subsection (2) only after consulting the Lord Chief Justice of England and Wales.
(9)The Lord Chancellor may exercise functions under this section in relation to the holder of a United Kingdom judicial office specified in paragraph (c) of the definition in subsection (2) only after consulting the Lord Chief Justice of Northern Ireland.
(10)The Lord Chief Justice of England and Wales may nominate a judicial office holder (within the meaning of section 109(4) of the Constitutional Reform Act 2005) to exercise his functions under subsection (8).
(11)The Lord Chief Justice of Northern Ireland may nominate any of the following to exercise his functions under subsection (9)—
(a)the holder of one of the offices listed in Schedule 1 to the Justice (Northern Ireland) Act 2002;
(b)a Lord Justice of Appeal (as defined in section 88 of that Act).”
Yn ddilys o 03/04/2006
282(1)Section 69 (Vice-President of Queen's Bench division) is amended as follows.U.K.
(2)In subsection (1) for “Lord Chancellor may” substitute “ Lord Chief Justice may, after consulting the Lord Chancellor, ”.
(3)After subsection (1) insert—
“(1A)The Lord Chief Justice may nominate a judicial office holder (as defined in section 109(4) of the Constitutional Reform Act 2005) to exercise his functions under subsection (1).”
Yn ddilys o 03/04/2006
Immigration and Asylum Act 1999 (c. 33)U.K.
283U.K.The Immigration and Asylum Act 1999 is amended as follows.
284(1)Section 53 (applications for bail in immigration cases) is amended as follows.U.K.
(2)After subsection (6) insert—
“(6A)In so far as regulations under this section relate to England and Wales, the Lord Chancellor must consult the Lord Chief Justice of England and Wales before giving his approval.
(6B)In so far as regulations under this section relate to Northern Ireland, the Lord Chancellor must consult the Lord Chief Justice of Northern Ireland before giving his approval.”
(3)After subsection (7) insert—
“(8)The Lord Chief Justice of England and Wales may nominate a judicial office holder (as defined in section 109(4) of the Constitutional Reform Act 2005) to exercise his functions under this section.
(9)The Lord Chief Justice of Northern Ireland may nominate any of the following to exercise his functions under this section—
(a)the holder of one of the offices listed in Schedule 1 to the Justice (Northern Ireland) Act 2002;
(b)a Lord Justice of Appeal (as defined in section 88 of that Act).”
285U.K.In Schedule 7 (Immigration Services Tribunal), in paragraph 3 (terms and conditions of appointment of members) after sub-paragraph (4) insert—
“(5)The Lord Chancellor may dismiss a person under sub-paragraph (4) only with the concurrence of the appropriate senior judge.
(6)The appropriate senior judge is the Lord Chief Justice of England and Wales, unless—
(a)the person to be dismissed exercises functions wholly or mainly in Scotland, in which case it is the Lord President of the Court of Session, or
(b)that person exercises functions wholly or mainly in Northern Ireland, in which case it is the Lord Chief Justice of Northern Ireland.”
Yn ddilys o 03/04/2006
Financial Services and Markets Act 2000 (c. 8)U.K.
286(1)Schedule 13 (Financial Services and Markets Tribunal) of the Financial Services and Markets Act 2000 is amended as follows.U.K.
(2)In paragraph 2 (president of the tribunal), after sub-paragraph (7) insert—
“(8)The Lord Chancellor may appoint a person under sub-paragraph (7)(b) only after consulting the following—
(a)the Lord Chief Justice of England and Wales;
(b)the Lord President of the Court of Session;
(c)the Lord Chief Justice of Northern Ireland.
(9)The Lord Chief Justice of England and Wales may nominate a judicial office holder (as defined in section 109(4) of the Constitutional Reform Act 2005) to exercise his functions under this paragraph.
(10)The Lord President of the Court of Session may nominate a judge of the Court of Session who is a member of the First or Second Division of the Inner House of that Court to exercise his functions under this paragraph.
(11)The Lord Chief Justice of Northern Ireland may nominate any of the following to exercise his functions under this paragraph—
(a)the holder of one of the offices listed in Schedule 1 to the Justice (Northern Ireland) Act 2002;
(b)a Lord Justice of Appeal (as defined in section 88 of that Act).”
(3)In paragraph 4 (terms of office), after sub-paragraph (2) insert—
“(2A)The Lord Chancellor may remove a person under sub-paragraph (2) only with the concurrence of the appropriate senior judge.
(2B)The appropriate senior judge is the Lord Chief Justice of England and Wales, unless—
(a)the person to be removed exercises functions wholly or mainly in Scotland, in which case it is the Lord President of the Court of Session, or
(b)the person to be removed exercises functions wholly or mainly in Northern Ireland, in which case it is the Lord Chief Justice of Northern Ireland.”
(4)In paragraph 8 (sittings) after “Lord Chancellor may” insert “ , after consulting the President of the Financial Services and Markets Tribunal, ”.
Yn ddilys o 03/04/2006
Terrorism Act 2000 (c. 11)U.K.
287U.K.The Terrorism Act 2000 is amended as follows.
288(1)Section 74 (court for trial) is amended as follows.U.K.
(2)In subsection (1)—
(a)after “unless” insert “ the Lord Chief Justice of Northern Ireland directs that ”;
(b)in paragraph (a) omit from “the Lord Chancellor” to “directs that”;
(c)in paragraph (b) omit “the Lord Chief Justice of Northern Ireland directs that”.
(3)After subsection (1) insert—
“(1A)The Lord Chief Justice of Northern Ireland may nominate any of the following to exercise his functions under subsection (1)—
(a)the holder of one of the offices listed in Schedule 1 to the Justice (Northern Ireland) Act 2002;
(b)a Lord Justice of Appeal (as defined in section 88 of that Act).”
289(1)In Schedule 3 (Proscribed Organisations Appeal Commission), paragraph 4 (sittings) is amended as follows.U.K.
(2)In sub-paragraph (1) after “direct” insert “after consulting the following—
(a)the Lord Chief Justice of England and Wales;
(b)the Lord President of the Court of Session;
(c)the Lord Chief Justice of Northern Ireland”.
(3)After sub-paragraph (3) insert—
“(4)The Lord Chief Justice may nominate a judicial office holder (as defined in section 109(4) of the Constitutional Reform Act 2005) to exercise his functions under this paragraph.
(5)The Lord President of the Court of Session may nominate a judge of the Court of Session who is a member of the First or Second Division of the Inner House of that Court to exercise his functions under this paragraph.
(6)The Lord Chief Justice of Northern Ireland may nominate any of the following to exercise his functions under this paragraph—
(a)the holder of one of the offices listed in Schedule 1 to the Justice (Northern Ireland) Act 2002 (c. 26);
(b)a Lord Justice of Appeal (as defined in section 88 of that Act).”
290(1)Schedule 8 (detention) is amended as follows.U.K.
(2)In paragraph 29 (warrants of further detention)—
(a)in sub-paragraph (4)(a) for “by the Lord Chancellor” substitute “ by the Lord Chief Justice of England and Wales after consulting the Lord Chancellor ”;
(b)in sub-paragraph (4)(c) for “by the Lord Chancellor” substitute “ by the Lord Chief Justice of Northern Ireland after consulting the Lord Chancellor ”;
(c)after sub-paragraph (4) insert—
“(5)The Lord Chief Justice may nominate a judicial office holder (as defined in section 109(4) of the Constitutional Reform Act 2005) to exercise his functions under sub-paragraph (4)(a).
(6)The Lord Chief Justice of Northern Ireland may nominate any of the following to exercise his functions under sub-paragraph (4)(c)—
(a)the holder of one of the offices listed in Schedule 1 to the Justice (Northern Ireland) Act 2002;
(b)a Lord Justice of Appeal (as defined in section 88 of that Act).”
Yn ddilys o 03/04/2006
Local Government Act 2000 (c. 22)U.K.
291(1)Section 76 of the Local Government Act 2000 (case tribunals and interim case tribunals) is amended as follows.U.K.
(2)In subsection (9) for “Lord Chancellor” substitute “ Lord Chief Justice ”.
(3)After subsection (9) insert—
“(9A)The Lord Chief Justice must consult the Lord Chancellor before specifying a member of the Panel in accordance with subsection (9).”
(4)In subsection (12) after “Lord Chancellor must” insert “ consult the Lord Chief Justice and ”.
(5)After subsection (14) insert—
“(15)The Lord Chief Justice may nominate a judicial office holder (as defined in section 109(4) of the Constitutional Reform Act 2005) to exercise his functions under this section.”
Yn ddilys o 03/04/2006
Postal Services Act 2000 (c. 26)U.K.
292(1)Schedule 3 to the Postal Services Act 2000 (transfer to the Post Office Company: supplementary provisions) is amended as follows.U.K.
(2)In paragraph 6 (third party rights relating to land), in sub-paragraph (5)(c) for “Lord Chancellor” substitute “ Chairman of the Royal Institution of Chartered Surveyors in Northern Ireland ”.
(3)In paragraph 7 (other third party property rights), in sub-paragraph (3)(c) for “Lord Chancellor” substitute “ Chairman of the Royal Institution of Chartered Surveyors in Northern Ireland ”.
Yn ddilys o 03/04/2006
Transport Act 2000 (c. 38)U.K.
293U.K.The Transport Act 2000 is amended as follows.
294U.K.In section 61 (special provisions about land), in subsection (6)(c) for “Lord Chancellor” substitute “ Chairman of the Royal Institution of Chartered Surveyors in Northern Ireland ”.
295U.K.In section 93 (control in time of hostilities etc), in subsection (10)(c) for “Lord Chancellor” substitute “ Chairman of the Royal Institution of Chartered Surveyors in Northern Ireland ”.
296U.K.In section 94 (orders for possessions of aerodromes etc), in subsection (8)(c) for “Lord Chancellor” substitute “ Chairman of the Royal Institution of Chartered Surveyors in Northern Ireland ”.
297(1)Schedule 6 (transfer schemes) is amended as follows.U.K.
(2)In paragraph 20 (compensation for third parties), in sub-paragraph (6)(c) for “Lord Chancellor” substitute “ Chairman of the Royal Institution of Chartered Surveyors in Northern Ireland ”.
Yn ddilys o 03/04/2006
Criminal Justice and Court Services Act 2000 (c. 43)U.K.
298(1)Schedule 1 of the Criminal Justice and Court Services Act 2000 (local probation boards) is amended as follows.U.K.
(2)In paragraph 2 (membership)—
(a)in sub-paragraph (2) for “Lord Chancellor” substitute “ Lord Chief Justice, after consulting the Lord Chancellor ”;
(b)after sub-paragraph (7) insert—
“(8)The Lord Chief Justice may nominate a judicial office holder (as defined in section 109(4) of the Constitutional Reform Act 2005) to exercise his functions under sub-paragraph (2).”
(3)In paragraph 3 (tenure of members), after sub-paragraph (3) insert—
“(3A)The power conferred by sub-paragraph (3) may be exercised by the Lord Chancellor to remove a person appointed by him by virtue of paragraph 2(2) only with the concurrence of the Lord Chief Justice.”
Yn ddilys o 03/04/2006
International Criminal Court Act 2001 (c. 17)U.K.
299U.K.Section 26 of the International Criminal Court Act 2001 (definitions) is amended as follows—
(a)that section becomes subsection (1) of section 26;
(b)in that subsection for “by the Lord Chancellor” substitute “ by the Lord Chief Justice of England and Wales after consulting the Lord Chancellor ”;
(c)after that subsection insert—
“(2)The Lord Chief Justice may nominate a judicial office holder (as defined in section 109(4) of the Constitutional Reform Act 2005) to exercise his functions under this section.”
Yn ddilys o 03/04/2006
Anti-terrorism, Crime and Security Act 2001 (c. 24)U.K.
300(1)In Schedule 6 to the Anti-terrorism, Crime and Security Act 2001 (Pathogens Access Appeal Commission), paragraph 4 (sittings) is amended as follows.U.K.
(2)In sub-paragraph (1) after “direct” insert “after consulting the following—
(a)the Lord Chief Justice of England and Wales;
(b)the Lord President of the Court of Session;
(c)the Lord Chief Justice of Northern Ireland.”
(3)After sub-paragraph (3) insert—
“(4)The Lord Chief Justice may nominate a judicial office holder (as defined in section 109(4) of the Constitutional Reform Act 2005) to exercise his functions under sub-paragraph (1).
(5)The Lord President of the Court of Session may nominate a judge of the Court of Session who is a member of the First or Second Division of the Inner House of that Court to exercise his functions under sub-paragraph (1).
(6)The Lord Chief Justice of Northern Ireland may nominate any of the following to exercise his functions under sub-paragraph (1)—
(a)the holder of one of the offices listed in Schedule 1 to the Justice (Northern Ireland) Act 2002;
(b)a Lord Justice of Appeal (as defined in section 88 of that Act).”
Yn ddilys o 03/04/2006
Land Registration Act 2002 (c. 9)U.K.
301U.K.The Land Registration Act 2002 is amended as follows.
302(1)Section 127 (exercise of powers) is amended as follows.U.K.
(2)In subsection (2)(a) for “Lord Chancellor” substitute “ Lord Chief Justice, or a judicial office holder (as defined in section 109(4) of the Constitutional Reform Act 2005) nominated by him, after consulting the Lord Chancellor ”.
(3)In subsection (2)(h) after “consumer affairs” insert “ nominated by the Lord Chancellor ”.
303U.K.In Schedule 9 (the Adjudicator), in paragraph 1 (holding of office), in sub-paragraph (2) after “Lord Chancellor may” insert “ , with the concurrence of the Lord Chief Justice, ”.
Yn ddilys o 03/04/2006
Enterprise Act 2002 (c. 40)U.K.
304U.K.The Enterprise Act 2002 is amended as follows.
305(1)Section 268 (disqualification from office: general) is amended as follows.U.K.
(2)In subsection (7)—
(a)omit “made with the concurrence of the Lord Chancellor”;
(b)after “tribunal” insert “; but any such order must—
(a)if it relates to England and Wales, be made with the concurrence of the Lord Chief Justice of England and Wales;
(b)if it relates to Northern Ireland, be made with the concurrence of the Lord Chief Justice of Northern Ireland”.
(3)After subsection (15) insert—
“(16)The Lord Chief Justice may nominate a judicial office holder (as defined in section 109(4) of the Constitutional Reform Act 2005) to exercise his functions under subsection (7).
(17)The Lord Chief Justice of Northern Ireland may nominate any of the following to exercise his functions under subsection (7)—
(a)the holder of one of the offices listed in Schedule 1 to the Justice (Northern Ireland) Act 2002;
(b)a Lord Justice of Appeal (as defined in section 88 of that Act).”
306U.K.In paragraph 2 of Schedule 2 (tenure of members of Competition Appeal Tribunal), after sub-paragraph (4) insert—
“(5)The Lord Chancellor may remove a person from office as President under sub-paragraph (4) only with the concurrence of all of the following—
(a)the Lord Chief Justice of England and Wales;
(b)the Lord President of the Court of Session;
(c)the Lord Chief Justice of Northern Ireland.
(6)The Lord Chancellor may remove a person from office as chairman under sub-paragraph (4) only with the concurrence of the appropriate senior judge.
(7)The appropriate senior judge is the Lord Chief Justice of England and Wales, unless—
(a)the person to be removed exercises functions wholly or mainly in Scotland, in which case it is the Lord President of the Court of Session, or
(b)the person to be removed exercises functions wholly or mainly in Northern Ireland, in which case it is the Lord Chief Justice of Northern Ireland.”
Yn ddilys o 03/04/2006
Finance Act 2003 (c. 14)U.K.
307(1)Schedule 17 to the Finance Act 2003 (stamp duty land tax: General and Special Commissioners, appeals and other proceedings) is amended as follows.U.K.
(2)In paragraph 2 (regulations about determination of disputes), after sub-paragraph (1) insert—
“(1A)The Lord Chancellor may make regulations under this paragraph only after consulting all of the following—
(a)the Lord Chief Justice of England and Wales;
(b)the Lord President of the Court of Session;
(c)the Lord Chief Justice of Northern Ireland.
(1B)The Lord Chief Justice of England and Wales may nominate a judicial office holder (as defined in section 109(4) of the Constitutional Reform Act 2005) to exercise his functions under this paragraph.
(1C)The Lord President of the Court of Session may nominate a judge of the Court of Session who is a member of the First or Second Division of the Inner House of that Court to exercise his functions under this paragraph.
(1D)The Lord Chief Justice of Northern Ireland may nominate any of the following to exercise his functions under this paragraph—
(a)the holder of one of the offices listed in Schedule 1 to the Justice (Northern Ireland) Act 2002;
(b)a Lord Justice of Appeal (as defined in section 88 of that Act).”
(3)In paragraph 3 (regulations about jurisdiction of General or Special Commissioners), after sub-paragraph (3) insert—
“(4)The Lord Chancellor may make regulations under this paragraph only after consulting all of the following—
(a)the Lord Chief Justice of England and Wales;
(b)the Lord President of the Court of Session;
(c)the Lord Chief Justice of Northern Ireland.
(5)The Lord Chief Justice of England and Wales may nominate a judicial office holder (as defined in section 109(4) of the Constitutional Reform Act 2005) to exercise his functions under this paragraph.
(6)The Lord President of the Court of Session may nominate a judge of the Court of Session who is a member of the First or Second Division of the Inner House of that Court to exercise his functions under this paragraph.
(7)The Lord Chief Justice of Northern Ireland may nominate any of the following to exercise his functions under this paragraph—
(a)the holder of one of the offices listed in Schedule 1 to the Justice (Northern Ireland) Act 2002;
(b)a Lord Justice of Appeal (as defined in section 88 of that Act).”
(4)In paragraph 5 (regulations about quorum)—
(a)that paragraph becomes sub-paragraph (1) of paragraph 5;
(b)after that sub-paragraph—
“(2)The Lord Chancellor may make regulations under this paragraph only after consulting all of the following—
(a)the Lord Chief Justice of England and Wales;
(b)the Lord President of the Court of Session;
(c)the Lord Chief Justice of Northern Ireland.
(3)The Lord Chief Justice of England and Wales may nominate a judicial office holder (as defined in section 109(4) of the Constitutional Reform Act 2005) to exercise his functions under this paragraph.
(4)The Lord President of the Court of Session may nominate a judge of the Court of Session who is a member of the First or Second Division of the Inner House of that Court to exercise his functions under this paragraph.
(5)The Lord Chief Justice of Northern Ireland may nominate any of the following to exercise his functions under this paragraph—
(a)the holder of one of the offices listed in Schedule 1 to the Justice (Northern Ireland) Act 2002;
(b)a Lord Justice of Appeal (as defined in section 88 of that Act).”
(5)In paragraph 11 (regulations), for sub-paragraph (1) substitute—
“(1)Any power to make regulations under this Schedule is exercisable—
(a)only with the consent of the Scottish Ministers;
(b)subject to any other provision of this Schedule.”
Courts Act 2003 (c. 39)U.K.
Yn ddilys o 03/04/2006
308U.K.The Courts Act 2003 is amended as follows.
309(1)In section 2 (Court officers, staff and services), in subsection (7) for paragraphs (c) and (d) substitute—U.K.
“(c)the President of the Queen's Bench Division,
(d)the President of the Family Division, and
(e)the Chancellor of the High Court.”
Yn ddilys o 03/04/2006
310(1)Section 4 (establishment of courts boards) is amended as follows.U.K.
(2)After subsection (5) insert—
“(5A)Before making any order under subsection (2) or (4), the Lord Chancellor must consult the Lord Chief Justice.”
(3)After subsection (7) insert—
“(7A)The Lord Chief Justice may nominate a judicial office holder (as defined in section 109(4) of the Constitutional Reform Act 2005) to exercise his functions under this section.”
Yn ddilys o 03/04/2006
311(1)Section 5 (functions of courts boards) is amended as follows.U.K.
(2)In subsection (5) after “Lord Chancellor must” insert “ , after consulting the Lord Chief Justice, ”.
(3)In subsection (7) after “Lord Chancellor may” insert “ , after consulting the Lord Chief Justice, ”.
(4)After subsection (8) insert—
“(9)The Lord Chief Justice may nominate a judicial office holder (as defined in section 109(4) of the Constitutional Reform Act 2005) to exercise his functions under this section.”
Yn ddilys o 03/04/2006
312(1)Section 8 (local justice areas) is amended as follows.U.K.
(2)After subsection (5) insert—
“(5A)Before making any order under subsection (2) or (4), the Lord Chancellor must consult the Lord Chief Justice.”
(3)After subsection (7) insert—
“(8)The Lord Chief Justice may nominate a judicial office holder (as defined in section 109(4) of the Constitutional Reform Act 2005) to exercise his functions under this section.”
Yn ddilys o 03/04/2006
313(1)Section 10 (appointment of lay justices etc) is amended as follows.U.K.
(2)In subsection (2) for “Lord Chancellor” substitute “ Lord Chief Justice ”.
(3)In subsection (3) for “or on behalf of the Lord Chancellor” substitute “ Lord Chief Justice ”.
(4)After subsection (5) insert—
“(6)The functions conferred on the Lord Chief Justice by subsections (2) and (3) may be exercised only after consulting the Lord Chancellor.
(7)The Lord Chief Justice may nominate a judicial office holder (as defined in section 109(4) of the Constitutional Reform Act 2005) to exercise his functions under subsection (2) or (3).”
Yn ddilys o 03/04/2006
314U.K.In section 11 (resignation and removal of lay justices), in subsection (2)—
(a)after “Lord Chancellor may” insert “ , with the concurrence of the Lord Chief Justice, ”;
(b)in paragraph (b) after “Lord Chancellor” insert “ with the concurrence of the Lord Chief Justice ”.
Yn ddilys o 03/04/2006
315(1)Section 13 (entry of names in the supplemental list) is amended as follows.U.K.
(2)In subsection (3) for “Lord Chancellor may” substitute “ Lord Chief Justice may, with the concurrence of the Lord Chancellor, ”.
(3)In subsection (5) after “Lord Chancellor may” insert “ , with the concurrence of the Lord Chief Justice, ”.
(4)After subsection (5) insert—
“(6)The Lord Chief Justice may nominate a judicial office holder (as defined in section 109(4) of the Constitutional Reform Act 2005) to exercise his functions under subsection (3).”
Yn ddilys o 03/04/2006
316U.K.In section 14 (removal of names from the supplemental list), in subsection (2)(b) after “Lord Chancellor” insert “ , with the concurrence of the Lord Chief Justice, ”.
Yn ddilys o 03/04/2006
317(1)Section 15 (lay justices' allowances) is amended as follows.U.K.
(2)In subsection (7) for “Lord Chancellor” substitute “ Lord Chief Justice ”.
(3)After subsection (8) insert—
“(9)The Lord Chief Justice may nominate a judicial office holder (as defined in section 109(4) of the Constitutional Reform Act 2005) to exercise his functions under subsection (7).”
Yn ddilys o 03/04/2006
318U.K.In section 16 (records of lay justices), after subsection (3) insert—
“(4)The Lord Chancellor must consult the Lord Chief Justice before—
(a)appointing a person under subsection (1), or
(b)giving a direction under subsection (2).
(5)The Lord Chief Justice may nominate a judicial office holder (as defined in section 109(4) of the Constitutional Reform Act 2005) to exercise his functions under this section.”
Yn ddilys o 03/04/2006
319(1)Section 17 (chairman and deputy chairmen) is amended as follows.U.K.
(2)In subsection (3) for “Lord Chancellor, or a person acting on his behalf, may” substitute “ Lord Chief Justice may, with the concurrence of the Lord Chancellor, ”.
(3)After subsection (5) insert—
“(6)The Lord Chief Justice may nominate a judicial office holder (as defined in section 109(4) of the Constitutional Reform Act 2005) to exercise his functions under this section.”
Yn ddilys o 03/04/2006
320(1)Section 19 (training, development and appraisal of lay justices) is amended as follows.U.K.
(2)In subsection (2) for “Lord Chancellor” in each place substitute “ Lord Chief Justice ”.
(3)In subsection (3)—
(a)for “Lord Chancellor” substitute “ Lord Chief Justice ”;
(b)for “appropriate training and training materials” substitute “ training and training materials that appear to him, after consulting the Lord Chancellor, to be appropriate ”.
(4)After subsection (3) insert—
“(4)The Lord Chief Justice may nominate a judicial office holder (as defined in section 109(4) of the Constitutional Reform Act 2005) to exercise his functions under this section.”
Yn ddilys o 03/04/2006
321(1)Section 20 (rules) is amended as follows.U.K.
(2)In subsection (1) for “Lord Chancellor” substitute “ Lord Chief Justice ”.
(3)In subsection (2)—
(a)for “Lord Chancellor” substitute “ Lord Chief Justice ”;
(b)before paragraph (a) insert—
“(za)the Lord Chancellor,”.
(4)After subsection (2) insert—
“(3)The Lord Chief Justice may nominate a judicial office holder (as defined in section 109(4) of the Constitutional Reform Act 2005) to exercise his functions of making the rules referred to in this section.”
Yn ddilys o 03/04/2006
322(1)Section 21 (duty to consult lay justices on matters affecting them etc) is amended as follows.U.K.
(2)That section becomes subsection (1) of section 21.
(3)In that subsection after “Lord Chancellor” insert “ and the Lord Chief Justice ”.
(4)After that subsection insert—
“(2)The Lord Chief Justice may nominate a judicial office holder (as defined in section 109(4) of the Constitutional Reform Act 2005) to exercise his functions under this section.”
Yn ddilys o 03/04/2006
323U.K.In section 22 (appointment of District Judges (Magistrates' Courts)), in subsection (5) after “Lord Chancellor may” insert “ , with the concurrence of the Lord Chief Justice, ”.
Yn ddilys o 03/04/2006
324U.K.In section 24 (Deputy District Judges (Magistrates' Courts)), in subsection (4) after “Lord Chancellor may” insert “ , with the concurrence of the Lord Chief Justice, ”.
Yn ddilys o 03/04/2006
325(1)Section 25 (District Judges (Magistrates' Courts) as justices of the peace) is amended as follows.U.K.
(2)In subsection (2), leave out “or on behalf of the Lord Chancellor” and insert “ the Lord Chief Justice, after consulting the Lord Chancellor ”.
(3)After subsection (2) insert—
“(3)The Lord Chief Justice may nominate a judicial office holder (as defined in section 109(4) of the Constitutional Reform Act 2005) to exercise his functions under subsection (2).”
Yn ddilys o 03/04/2006
326(1)Section 27 (justices' clerks and assistant clerks) is amended as follows.U.K.
(2)In subsection (1)(b) after “Lord Chancellor” insert “ , after consulting the Lord Chief Justice, ”.
(3)In subsection (3)—
(a)in paragraph (a) after “must” insert “ , after consulting the Lord Chief Justice, ”;
(b)in paragraph (b) for “subsection (4)” substitute “ subsections (4A) to (4C) ”.
(4)For subsection (4) substitute—
“(4A)The Lord Chancellor may change an assignment of a justices' clerk so that he is no longer assigned to a local justice area (“the relevant area”) only if the conditions in subsections (4B) and (4C) are met.
(4B)Before changing the assignment, the Lord Chancellor must consult—
(a)the chairman of the lay justices assigned to the relevant area, or
(b)if that is not possible or not practicable, the deputy chairman or such of the lay justices assigned to or acting in the relevant area as it appears to the Lord Chancellor appropriate to consult.
(4C)The Lord Chief Justice must agree to the change.”
(5)After subsection (6) insert—
“(6A)The Lord Chief Justice may nominate a judicial office holder (as defined in section 109(4) of the Constitutional Reform Act 2005) to exercise his functions under this section.”
Yn ddilys o 03/04/2006
327(1)Section 28 (functions) is amended as follows.U.K.
(2)In subsection (8) after “Lord Chancellor” insert “ with the concurrence of the Lord Chief Justice ”.
(3)After subsection (9) insert—
“(10)The Lord Chief Justice may nominate a judicial office holder (as defined in section 109(4) of the Constitutional Reform Act 2005) to exercise his functions under this section.”
Yn ddilys o 03/04/2006
328(1)Section 30 (places, dates and times of sittings) is amended as follows.U.K.
(2)In subsection (1) after “Lord Chancellor may” insert “ , after consulting the Lord Chief Justice, ”.
(3)In subsection (7) after “Lord Chancellor may” insert “ , after consulting the Lord Chief Justice, ”.
(4)After subsection (8) insert—
“(9)The Lord Chief Justice may nominate a judicial office holder (as defined in section 109(4) of the Constitutional Reform Act 2005) to exercise his functions under subsection (1) or (7).”
Yn ddilys o 03/04/2006
329(1)Section 34 (costs in legal proceedings) is amended as follows.U.K.
(2)In subsection (5) after “Lord Chancellor may” insert “ , after consulting the Lord Chief Justice, ”.
(3)After subsection (5) insert—
“(6)The Lord Chief Justice may nominate a judicial office holder (as defined in section 109(4) of the Constitutional Reform Act 2005) to exercise his functions under this section.”
Yn ddilys o 03/04/2006
330U.K.For section 62 substitute—
“62Head and Deputy Head of Civil Justice
(1)There is to be a Head of Civil Justice.
(2)The Head of Civil Justice is—
(a)the Master of the Rolls, or
(b)if the Lord Chief Justice appoints another person, that person.
(3)The Lord Chief Justice may appoint a person to be Deputy Head of Civil Justice.
(4)The Lord Chief Justice must not appoint a person under subsection (2)(b) or (3) unless these conditions are met—
(a)the Lord Chief Justice has consulted the Lord Chancellor;
(b)the person to be appointed is one of the following—
(i)the Chancellor of the High Court;
(ii)an ordinary judge of the Court of Appeal.
(5)A person appointed under subsection (2)(b) or (3) holds the office to which he is appointed in accordance with the terms of his appointment.
(6)The Lord Chief Justice may nominate a judicial office holder (as defined in section 109(4) of the Constitutional Reform Act 2005) to exercise his functions under this section.”
Yn ddilys o 03/04/2006
331(1)Section 64 (power to alter judicial titles) is amended as follows.U.K.
(2)In subsection (2)—
(a)omit “Vice-Chancellor”;
(b)insert at the appropriate place—
(i)“ Chancellor of the High Court ”;
(ii)“ Deputy Head of Civil Justice ”;
(iii)“ Deputy Head of Criminal Justice ”;
(iv)“ Deputy Head of Family Justice ”;
(v)“ Head of Civil Justice ”;
(vi)“ Head of Criminal Justice ”;
(vii)“ Head of Family Justice ”;
(viii)“ President of the Courts of England and Wales ”;
(ix)“ President of the Queen's Bench Division ”.
(3)After subsection (3) insert—
“(3A)The Lord Chancellor may make an order under this section only with the concurrence of the Lord Chief Justice.”
(4)In subsection (4)—
(a)omit paragraph (a);
(b)for paragraphs (c) and (d) substitute—
“(ba)the President of the Queen's Bench Division,
(c)the President of the Family Division, and
(d)the Chancellor of the High Court.”
(5)After subsection (6) insert—
“(7)The Lord Chief Justice may nominate a judicial office holder (as defined in section 109(4) of the Constitutional Reform Act 2005) to exercise his functions under this section.”
Yn ddilys o 03/04/2006
332U.K.In section 69 (Criminal Procedure Rules), in subsection (4) omit “or alter”.
Yn ddilys o 03/04/2006
333(1)Section 70 (Criminal Procedure Rule Committee) is amended as follows.U.K.
(2)In subsection (1) for paragraph (b) substitute—
“(b)the persons currently appointed in accordance with subsections (1A) and (1B).”
(3)After subsection (1) insert—
“(1A)The Lord Chief Justice must appoint the persons falling within paragraphs (a) to (e) of subsection (2).
(1B)The Lord Chancellor must appoint the persons falling within paragraphs (f) to (k) of subsection (2).”
(4)In subsection (2) for “The Lord Chancellor must appoint” substitute “ The persons to be appointed in accordance with subsections (1A) and (1B) are ”.
(5)For subsection (3) substitute—
“(3)Before appointing a person in accordance with subsection (1A), the Lord Chief Justice must consult the Lord Chancellor.
(3A)Before appointing a person in accordance with subsection (1B), the Lord Chancellor must consult the Lord Chief Justice.”
(6)After subsection (5) insert—
“(5A)The Lord Chief Justice may nominate a judicial office holder (as defined in section 109(4) of the Constitutional Reform Act 2005) to exercise his functions under this section.”
Yn ddilys o 03/04/2006
334(1)Section 71 (power to change certain requirements relating to Committee) is amended as follows.U.K.
(2)In subsection (1) for paragraph (a) substitute—
“(a)amend section 70(2) or (3A), and”.
(3)For subsection (2) substitute—
“(2)The Lord Chancellor may make an order under this section only with the concurrence of the Lord Chief Justice.
(3)The Lord Chief Justice may nominate a judicial office holder (as defined in section 109(4) of the Constitutional Reform Act 2005) to exercise his functions under this section.”
Yn ddilys o 03/04/2006
335(1)Section 72 (process for making Criminal Procedure Rules) is amended as follows.U.K.
(2)For subsections (3) and (4) substitute—
“(3)The Lord Chancellor may, with the concurrence of the Secretary of State, allow or disallow rules so made.
(4)If the Lord Chancellor disallows rules, he must give the Committee written reasons for doing so.”
(3)In subsection (5) for “, as allowed or altered” substitute “ and allowed ”.
Yn ddilys o 03/04/2006
336U.K.After section 72 insert—
“72ARules to be made if required by Lord Chancellor
(1)This section applies if the Lord Chancellor gives the Criminal Procedure Rules Committee written notice that he thinks it is expedient for Criminal Procedure Rules to include provision that would achieve a purpose specified in the notice.
(2)The Committee must make such rules as it considers necessary to achieve the specified purpose.
(3)Those rules must be—
(a)made within a reasonable period after the Lord Chancellor gives notice to the Committee;
(b)made in accordance with section 72.
(4)The Lord Chancellor may not give notice under subsection (1) unless the Secretary of State agrees.”
Yn ddilys o 03/04/2006
337(1)Section 73 (power to amend legislation in connection with Criminal Procedure Rules) is amended as follows.U.K.
(2)That section becomes subsection (1) of section 73.
(3)In that subsection after “Secretary of State” insert “ and after consulting the Lord Chief Justice ”.
(4)After that subsection insert—
“(2)The Lord Chief Justice may nominate a judicial office holder (as defined in section 109(4) of the Constitutional Reform Act 2005) to exercise his functions under this section.”
Yn ddilys o 03/04/2006
338U.K.In section 75 (Family Procedure Rules), in subsection (5) omit “or alter”.
Yn ddilys o 03/04/2006
339(1)Section 77 (Family Procedure Rule Committee) is amended as follows.U.K.
(2)In subsection (1) for paragraph (b) substitute—
“(b)the persons currently appointed in accordance with subsections (1A) and (1B).”
(3)After subsection (1) insert—
“(1A)The Lord Chief Justice must appoint the persons falling within paragraphs (a) to (f) of subsection (2).
(1B)The Lord Chancellor must appoint the persons falling within paragraphs (g) to (o) of subsection (2).”
(4)In subsection (2) for “The Lord Chancellor must appoint” substitute “ The persons to be appointed in accordance with subsections (1A) and (1B) are ”.
(5)In subsection (3) for “under subsection (2), Lord Chancellor must consult” substitute “ in accordance with subsection (1A), the Lord Chief Justice must consult the Lord Chancellor and ”.
(6)Omit subsection (4).
(7)In subsection (5) for “under subsection (2)(h) to (m), the Lord Chancellor must consult” substitute “ in accordance with subsection (1B), the Lord Chancellor must consult the Lord Chief Justice and, if the person falls within any of paragraphs (h) to (m) of subsection (2), must also consult ”.
(8)After section (6) insert—
“(7)The Lord Chief Justice may nominate a judicial office holder (as defined in section 109(4) of the Constitutional Reform Act 2005) to exercise his functions under this section.”
Yn ddilys o 03/04/2006
340(1)Section 78 (power to change certain requirements relating to Committee) is amended as follows.U.K.
(2)In subsection (1)(a) after “Lord Chancellor” insert “ or Lord Chief Justice ”.
(3)After subsection (1) insert—
“(1A)The Lord Chancellor may make an order under this section only with the concurrence of the Lord Chief Justice.”
(4)After subsection (2) insert—
“(3)The Lord Chief Justice may nominate a judicial office holder (as defined in section 109(4) of the Constitutional Reform Act 2005) to exercise his functions under this section.”
Yn ddilys o 03/04/2006
341(1)Section 79 (process for making Family Procedure Rules) is amended as follows.U.K.
(2)For subsections (3) and (4) substitute—
“(3)The Lord Chancellor may allow or disallow rules so made.
(4)If the Lord Chancellor disallows rules, he must give the Committee written reasons for doing so.”
(3)In subsection (5) for “, as allowed or altered” substitute “ and allowed ”.
Yn ddilys o 03/04/2006
342U.K.After section 79 insert—
“79ARules to be made if required by Lord Chancellor
(1)This section applies if the Lord Chancellor gives the Family Procedure Rules Committee written notice that he thinks it is expedient for Family Procedure Rules to include provision that would achieve a purpose specified in the notice.
(2)The Committee must make such rules as it considers necessary to achieve the specified purpose.
(3)Those rules must be—
(a)made within a reasonable period after the Lord Chancellor gives notice to the Committee;
(b)made in accordance with section 79.”
Yn ddilys o 03/04/2006
343(1)Section 80 (power to amend legislation in connection with the rules) is amended as follows.U.K.
(2)That section becomes subsection (1) of section 80.
(3)In that subsection after “Lord Chancellor may” insert “ , after consulting the Lord Chief Justice, ”.
(4)After that subsection insert—
“(2)The Lord Chief Justice may nominate a judicial office holder (as defined in section 109(4) of the Constitutional Reform Act 2005) to exercise his functions under this section.”
Yn ddilys o 03/04/2006
344(1)Section 81 (practice directions relating to family proceedings) is amended as follows.U.K.
(2)In subsection (1), before paragraph (a) insert—
“(za)the civil division of the Court of Appeal,
(zb)the High Court,”.
(3)After subsection (2) insert—
“(2A)Directions as to the practice and procedure of any relevant court in family proceedings (whether given under subsection (1) or otherwise) may provide for any matter which, by virtue of paragraph 3 of Schedule 1 to the Civil Procedure Act 1997, may be provided for by Civil Procedure Rules.”
(4)In subsection (3) for “magistrates' courts and county courts (or any of them)” substitute “ any relevant court ”.
(5)After subsection (4) (inserted by paragraph 9(5) of Schedule 2 to this Act) insert—
“(5)In this section—
345U.K.In section 92 (fees), in subsection (5) for paragraphs (c) and (d) substitute—
“(ba)the President of the Queen's Bench Division;
(c)the President of the Family Division;
(d)the Chancellor of the High Court;”.
Yn ddilys o 03/04/2006
346(1)Section 102 (power to alter judicial titles: Northern Ireland) is amended as follows.U.K.
(2)Omit subsection (4).
(3)After subsection (6) insert—
“(6A)The Lord Chancellor may make an order under this section only with the concurrence of the Lord Chief Justice.
(6B)The Lord Chief Justice may nominate any of the following to exercise his functions under subsection (6A)—
(a)the holder of one of the offices listed in Schedule 1 to the Justice (Northern Ireland) Act 2002;
(b)a Lord Justice of Appeal (as defined in section 88 of that Act).”
Yn ddilys o 03/04/2006
347U.K.In section 107 (interpretation), in subsection (6) omit “by the Lord Chancellor”.
Yn ddilys o 03/04/2006
348U.K.In section 108 (rules, regulations and orders), in subsections (1) and (6) after “Lord Chancellor” insert “ or Lord Chief Justice ”.
Yn ddilys o 03/04/2006
349(1)Section 109 (minor and consequential amendments etc) is amended as follows.U.K.
(2)After subsection (4) insert—
“(4A)The following paragraphs apply to the making of provision that relates to England and Wales in an order under subsection (4)—
(a)before deciding what provision it is necessary or expedient to make, the Lord Chancellor must consult the Lord Chief Justice of England and Wales;
(b)before making the order, the Lord Chancellor must consult the Lord Chief Justice of England and Wales.
(4B)The following paragraphs apply to the making of provision that relates to Northern Ireland in an order under subsection (4)—
(a)before deciding what provision it is necessary or expedient to make, the Lord Chancellor must consult the Lord Chief Justice of Northern Ireland;
(b)before making the order, the Lord Chancellor must consult the Lord Chief Justice of Northern Ireland.”
(3)After subsection (6) insert—
“(7)The Lord Chief Justice may nominate a judicial office holder (as defined in section 109(4) of the Constitutional Reform Act 2005) to exercise his functions under this section.
(8)The Lord Chief Justice of Northern Ireland may nominate any of the following to exercise his functions under this section—
(a)the holder of one of the offices listed in Schedule 1 to the Justice (Northern Ireland) Act 2002;
(b)a Lord Justice of Appeal (as defined in section 88 of that Act).”
Yn ddilys o 03/04/2006
350(1)Schedule 1 (constitution and procedure of courts boards) is amended as follows.U.K.
(2)For paragraph 1 substitute—
“1(1)The members of each courts board are to be appointed by the Lord Chancellor.
(2)The Lord Chancellor may appoint a member of a description mentioned in paragraph 2(a) only with the concurrence of the Lord Chief Justice.”
(3)In paragraph 8 (meaning of regulations) after “Lord Chancellor” insert “ after consulting the Lord Chief Justice ”.
(4)After paragraph 8 insert—
“9The Lord Chief Justice may nominate a judicial office holder (as defined in section 109(4) of the Constitutional Reform Act 2005) to exercise his functions under this Schedule.”
351U.K.In Schedule 7 (High Court writs of execution), in paragraph 12(4) (regulations) for paragraphs (c) and (d) substitute—
“(ba)the President of the Queen's Bench Division,
(c)the President of the Family Division,
(d)the Chancellor of the High Court, and”.
Yn ddilys o 03/04/2006
Extradition Act 2003 (c. 41)U.K.
352U.K.The Extradition Act 2003 is amended as follows.
353(1)Section 67 (the appropriate judge) is amended as follows.U.K.
(2)In subsection (1)(a) for “by the Lord Chancellor” substitute “ by the Lord Chief Justice of England and Wales after consulting the Lord Chancellor ”.
(3)In subsection (1)(c) for “by the Lord Chancellor” substitute “ by the Lord Chief Justice of Northern Ireland after consulting the Lord Chancellor ”.
(4)After subsection (4) insert—
“(5)The Lord Chief Justice of England and Wales may nominate a judicial office holder (as defined in section 109(4) of the Constitutional Reform Act 2005) to exercise his functions under subsection (1)(a).
(6)The Lord Chief Justice of Northern Ireland may nominate any of the following to exercise his functions under subsection (1)(c)—
(a)the holder of one of the offices listed in Schedule 1 to the Justice (Northern Ireland) Act 2002;
(b)a Lord Justice of Appeal (as defined in section 88 of that Act).”
354(1)Section 139 (the appropriate judge) is amended as follows.U.K.
(2)In subsection (1)(a) for “by the Lord Chancellor” substitute “ by the Lord Chief Justice of England and Wales after consulting the Lord Chancellor ”.
(3)In subsection (1)(c) for “Lord Chancellor” substitute “ Lord Chief Justice of Northern Ireland after consulting the Lord Chancellor ”.
(4)After subsection (4) insert—
“(5)The Lord Chief Justice of England and Wales may nominate a judicial office holder (as defined in section 109(4) of the Constitutional Reform Act 2005) to exercise his functions under subsection (1)(a).
(6)The Lord Chief Justice of Northern Ireland may nominate any of the following to exercise his functions under subsection (1)(c)—
(a)the holder of one of the offices listed in Schedule 1 to the Justice (Northern Ireland) Act 2002;
(b)a Lord Justice of Appeal (as defined in section 88 of that Act).”
355U.K.In section 185 (free legal aid: supplementary), in subsection (6) (meaning of appropriate judge)—
(a)in paragraph (a) for “by the Lord Chancellor” substitute “ under section 67 ”;
(b)in paragraph (b) for “by the Lord Chancellor” substitute “ under section 139 ”.
Yn ddilys o 03/04/2006
Criminal Justice Act 2003 (c. 44)U.K.
356U.K.The Criminal Justice Act 2003 is amended as follows.
357(1)Section 167 (Sentencing Guidelines Council) is amended as follows.U.K.
(2)In subsection (1)(b)—
(a)for “Lord Chancellor” substitute “ Lord Chief Justice ”;
(b)for “Lord Chief Justice” substitute “ Lord Chancellor ”.
(3)After subsection (9) insert—
“(10)The Lord Chief Justice may nominate a judicial office holder (as defined in section 109(4) of the Constitutional Reform Act 2005) to exercise his functions under this section.”
358(1)Section 168 (Sentencing Guidelines Council: supplementary) is amended as follows.U.K.
(2)In subsection (1) for paragraphs (b) and (c) substitute—
“(b)enabling the Lord Chancellor to remove a judicial member from office, with the concurrence of the Lord Chief Justice, on the grounds of incapacity or misbehaviour, and
(c)enabling the Secretary of State to remove a non-judicial member from office on the grounds of incapacity or misbehaviour.”
(3)For subsection (2) substitute—
“(1A)The following provisions apply to an order under subsection (1)—
(a)if the order includes provision falling within subsection (1)(a), the Lord Chancellor must consult the Lord Chief Justice about that provision before making the order;
(b)if the order includes provision falling within subsection (1)(b), the order may not be made unless the Lord Chief Justice agrees to the inclusion of that provision.
(1B)The Lord Chief Justice may, with the concurrence of the Lord Chancellor, by order make provision as to the proceedings of the Council.”
(4)After subsection (5) insert—
“(6)The Lord Chief Justice may nominate a judicial office holder (as defined in section 109(4) of the Constitutional Reform Act 2005) to exercise his functions under subsection (1B).”
359(1)Section 330 (orders and rules) is amended as follows.U.K.
(2)In subsection (1)(b) after “Lord Chancellor” insert “ or the Lord Chief Justice ”.
(3)After subsection (2) insert—
“(2A)Where a statutory instrument is made by the Lord Chief Justice in the exercise of the power referred to in subsection (1)(b), the Statutory Instruments Act 1946 applies to the instrument as if it contained an order made by a Minister of the Crown.”
Yn ddilys o 03/04/2006
Employment Tribunals (Constitution and Rules of Procedure) Regulations 2004 (S.I. 2004/ 1861)U.K.
360U.K.In regulation 4 of the Employment Tribunals (Constitution and Rules of Procedure) Regulations 2004 (President of Employment Tribunals), after paragraph (5) insert—
“(5A)Where the Lord Chancellor is the appointing office holder, he may revoke an appointment in accordance with paragraph (5) only with the concurrence of the Lord Chief Justice.”
Yn ddilys o 03/04/2006
Part 2 U.K.Amendments of or relating to enactments repealed or amended otherwise than by this Act
IntroductionU.K.
361(1)This Part of this Schedule contains amendments of or relating to enactments that have already been amended or repealed by provisions of other Acts.U.K.
(2)In each case the amending or repealing provision is specified, in relation to the enactment referred to, as the “original amending provision”.
(3)An amendment contained in any provision of this Part of this Schedule has effect only until the original amending provision comes fully into force in relation to the enactment referred to in that provision of this Part of this Schedule.
Promissory Oaths Act 1871 (c. 48)U.K.
362(1)Section 2 of the Promissory Oaths Act 1871 (persons before whom oaths to be taken) is amended as follows.U.K.
(2)In the paragraph beginning “In England” for “Lord High Chancellor of Great Britain” substitute “ Lord Chief Justice of England and Wales ”.
(3)After that paragraph insert— “ The Lord Chief Justice may nominate a judicial office holder (as defined in section 109(4) of the Constitutional Reform Act 2005) to exercise his functions under the preceding paragraph. ”
(4)In relation to the enactment referred to in this paragraph, the original amending provision is paragraph 51 of Schedule 8 to the Courts Act 2003 (c. 39).
Children and Young Persons Act 1933 (c. 12)U.K.
363(1)Schedule 2 to the Children and Young Persons Act 1933 (constitution of youth courts) is amended as follows.U.K.
(2)In paragraph 6—
(a)in paragraph (a)—
(i)after “he may” insert “ after consulting the Lord Chief Justice ”;
(ii)after “thinks fit” insert “ after consulting the Lord Chief Justice ”;
(b)in paragraph (b)—
(i)after “may” insert “ , after consulting the Lord Chief Justice, ”;
(ii)after “thinks fit” insert “ , after consulting the Lord Chief Justice, ”.
(3)In paragraph 14 after “Lord Chancellor may” insert “ , after consulting the Lord Chief Justice, ”.
(4)In paragraph 15(b)—
(a)for “by the Lord Chancellor” substitute “ by the Lord Chief Justice, after consulting the Lord Chancellor, ”;
(b)for “order of the Lord Chancellor” substitute “ order made by the Lord Chief Justice after consulting the Lord Chancellor ”.
(5)In paragraph 16 for “consent of the Lord Chancellor,” substitute “ consent of the Lord Chief Justice, given after consulting the Lord Chancellor, ”.
(6)In paragraph 18—
(a)for “Lord Chancellor” in the first place substitute “ Lord Chief Justice ”;
(b)for “Lord Chancellor” in the second place substitute “ Lord Chief Justice, after consulting the Lord Chancellor ”.
(7)After paragraph 21 insert—
“22The Lord Chief Justice may nominate a judicial office holder (as defined in section 109(4) of the Constitutional Reform Act 2005) to exercise his functions under this Schedule.”
(8)In relation to the enactments referred to in this paragraph, the original amending provision is Schedule 10 to the Courts Act 2003.
Pensions Appeal Tribunals Act 1943 (c. 39)U.K.
364(1)Section 6 of the Pensions Appeal Tribunal Act 1943 (constitution, jurisdiction and procedure of Pensions Appeal Tribunals) is amended as follows.U.K.
(2)In subsection (2)—
(a)for “a judge of the High Court nominated for the purpose by the Lord Chancellor” substitute “ the relevant judicial authority ”;
(b)for “judge so nominated” substitute “ relevant judicial authority ”;
(c)for “that judge” substitute “ that authority ”.
(3)After subsection (2) insert—
“(2ZA)In subsection (2) “relevant judicial authority” means—
(a)in relation to England and Wales, a judge of the High Court in England and Wales nominated for the purposes of subsection (2) by the Lord Chief Justice of England and Wales after consulting the Lord Chancellor;
(b)in relation to Scotland, the Court of Session;
(c)in relation to Northern Ireland, the Court of Appeal in Northern Ireland.
(2ZB)The Lord Chief Justice of England and Wales may nominate a judicial office holder (as defined in section 109(4) of the Constitutional Reform Act 2005) to exercise his functions under subsection (2ZA)(a).”
(4)After subsection (4) insert—
“(5)In the application of subsection (2) in relation to Northern Ireland, “rules of court” means rules of court made under section 55 of the Judicature (Northern Ireland) Act 1978.”
(5)In relation to the enactment referred to in this paragraph, the original amending provision is paragraph 3(2) of Schedule 1 to the Armed Forces (Pensions and Compensation) Act 2004 (c. 32).
Maintenance Orders Act 1950 (c. 37)U.K.
365(1)In section 25(1) of the Maintenance Orders Act 1950 (power to make rules about procedure under section 144 of the Magistrates' Court Act 1980), for “Lord Chancellor” substitute “ Lord Chief Justice of England and Wales ”.U.K.
(2)In relation to the enactment referred to in this paragraph, the original amending provision is paragraph 91(2) of Schedule 8 to the Courts Act 2003.
Courts Act 1971 (c. 23)U.K.
366(1)In section 27 of the Courts Act 1971, in the definition of “the senior judges” in subsection (9) for “the Vice-Chancellor and the President of the Family Division” substitute “ the President of the Queen's Bench Division, the President of the Family Division and the Chancellor of the High Court ”.U.K.
(2)In relation to the enactment referred to in this paragraph, the original amending provision is paragraph 139(a) of Schedule 8 to the Courts Act 2003.
Restrictive Practices Court Act 1976 (c. 33)U.K.
367U.K.The Restrictive Practices Court Act 1976 is amended as follows.
368(1)In section 1 (the Court), after subsection (3) insert—U.K.
“(3A)The Lord Chancellor may select a person under subsection (3) only with the concurrence of all of the following—
(a)the Lord Chief Justice of England and Wales;
(b)the Lord President of the Court of Session;
(c)the Lord Chief Justice of Northern Ireland.
(3B)The Lord Chief Justice of England and Wales may nominate a judicial office holder (as defined in section 109(4) of the Constitutional Reform Act 2005) to exercise his functions under this section.
(3C)The Lord President of the Court of Session may nominate a judge of the Court of Session who is a member of the First or Second Division of the Inner House of that Court to exercise his functions under this section.
(3D)The Lord Chief Justice of Northern Ireland may nominate any of the following to exercise his functions under this section—
(a)the holder of one of the offices listed in Schedule 1 to the Justice (Northern Ireland) Act 2002;
(b)a Lord Justice of Appeal (as defined in section 88 of that Act).”
(2)In relation to the enactment referred to in this paragraph, the original amending provision is section 1 of the Competition Act 1998 (c. 41).
369(1)Section 2 (judges of the Court) is amended as follows.U.K.
(2)In subsections (1)(a) and (3) for “Lord Chancellor” substitute “ Lord Chief Justice of England and Wales ”.
(3)After subsection (4) insert—
“(5)The functions conferred on the Lord Chief Justice of England and Wales or on the Lord Chief Justice of Northern Ireland by this section may be exercised only after consulting the Lord Chancellor.
(6)The functions conferred on the Lord Chief Justice of Northern Ireland by this section may be exercised only after consulting the Lord Chancellor.
(7)The Lord Chief Justice of England and Wales may nominate a judicial office holder (as defined in section 109(4) of the Constitutional Reform Act 2005) to exercise his functions under this section.
(8)The Lord President of the Court of Session may nominate a judge of the Court of Session who is a member of the First or Second Division of the Inner House of that Court to exercise his functions under this section.
(9)The Lord Chief Justice of Northern Ireland may nominate any of the following to exercise his functions under this section—
(a)the holder of one of the offices listed in Schedule 1 to the Justice (Northern Ireland) Act 2002;
(b)a Lord Justice of Appeal (as defined in section 88 of that Act).”
(4)In relation to the enactment referred to in this paragraph, the original amending provision is section 1 of the Competition Act 1998 (c. 41).
370(1)Section 3 (non-judicial members) is amended as follows.U.K.
(2)After subsection (3) insert—
“(4)The Lord Chancellor may exercise his functions under subsection (2)(b) only with the concurrence of the appropriate senior judge.
(5)The appropriate senior judge is the Lord Chief Justice of England and Wales, unless—
(a)the member to be removed exercises functions wholly or mainly in Scotland, in which case it is the Lord President of the Court of Session, or
(b)the member to be removed exercises functions wholly or mainly in Northern Ireland, in which case it is the Lord Chief Justice of Northern Ireland.”
(3)In relation to the enactment referred to in this paragraph, the original amending provision is section 1 of the Competition Act 1998.
371(1)Section 4 (provision for additional judges or members) is amended as follows.U.K.
(2)In subsection (1), in paragraph (a) after “consultation with” insert “ the Lord Chief Justice of England and Wales, ”.
(3)After subsection (2) insert—
“(3)The Lord Chief Justice of England and Wales may nominate a judicial office holder (as defined in section 109(4) of the Constitutional Reform Act 2005) to exercise his functions under this section.
(4)The Lord President of the Court of Session may nominate a judge of the Court of Session who is a member of the First or Second Division of the Inner House of that Court to exercise his functions under this section.
(5)The Lord Chief Justice of Northern Ireland may nominate any of the following to exercise his functions under this section—
(a)the holder of one of the offices listed in Schedule 1 to the Justice (Northern Ireland) Act 2002;
(b)a Lord Justice of Appeal (as defined in section 88 of that Act).”
(4)In relation to the enactment referred to in this paragraph, the original amending provision is section 1 of the Competition Act 1998.
372(1)Section 6 (administration) is amended as follows.U.K.
(2)In subsection (5) after “Lord Chancellor may” insert “ , after consulting the Lord Chief Justice of England and Wales, ”.
(3)After subsection (6) insert—
“(7)The Lord Chief Justice of England and Wales may nominate a judicial office holder (as defined in section 109(4) of the Constitutional Reform Act 2005) to exercise his functions under this section.”
(4)In relation to the enactment referred to in this paragraph, the original amending provision is section 1 of the Competition Act 1998.
373(1)In section 9 (procedure), in subsection (1) for “Lord Chancellor” substitute “ president of the Court with the concurrence of the Lord Chancellor ”.U.K.
(2)In relation to the enactment referred to in this paragraph, the original amending provision is section 1 of the Competition Act 1998 (c. 41).
Magistrates' Courts Act 1980 (c. 43)U.K.
374U.K.The Magistrates' Courts Act 1980 is amended as follows.
375(1)Section 67 (family proceedings courts and panels) is amended as follows.U.K.
(2)In subsection (2)(a) for “by the Lord Chancellor” substitute “ by the Lord Chief Justice, after consulting the Lord Chancellor, ”.
(3)In subsection (5) for “on the Lord Chancellor” substitute “ , exercisable by the Lord Chancellor with the concurrence of the Lord Chief Justice, ”.
(4)After subsection (8) insert—
“(9)The Lord Chief Justice may nominate a judicial office holder (as defined in section 109(4) of the Constitutional Reform Act 2005) to exercise his functions under subsection (2)(a).”
(5)In relation to the enactment referred to in this paragraph, the original amending provision is section 49(1) of the Courts Act 2003.
376(1)Section 68 (combined family panels) is amended as follows.U.K.
(2)In subsection (2), after “thinks fit” insert “ after consulting the Lord Chief Justice ”.
(3)After subsection (6) insert—
“(6A)The Lord Chief Justice may nominate a judicial office holder (as defined in section 109(4) of the Constitutional Reform Act 2005) to exercise his functions under this section.”
(4)In relation to the enactment referred to in this paragraph, the original amending provision is section 49(2) of the Courts Act 2003 (c. 39).
377(1)In section 146 (rules relating to youth court panels and composition of youth court), in subsection (2) for “Lord Chancellor” substitute “ Lord Chief Justice ”.U.K.
(2)After subsection (5) insert—
“(6)The Lord Chief Justice may nominate a judicial office holder (as defined in section 109(4) of the Constitutional Reform Act 2005) to exercise his powers under rules made under this section.”
(3)In relation to the enactment referred to in this paragraph, the original amending provision is section 50(3) of the Courts Act 2003.
Supreme Court Act 1981 (c. 54)U.K.
378(1)Section 130 of the Supreme Court Act 1981 (fees to be taken in Supreme Court) is amended as follows.U.K.
(2)In subsection (2)(a) for “President of the Family Division and the Vice-Chancellor” substitute “ President of the Queen's Bench Division, President of the Family Division and the Chancellor of the High Court ”.
(3)In relation to the enactment referred to in this paragraph, the original amending provision is paragraph 263 of Schedule 8 to the Courts Act 2003 (c. 39).
Matrimonial and Family Proceedings Act 1984 (c. 42)U.K.
379U.K.The Matrimonial and Family Proceedings Act 1984 is amended as follows.
380(1)Section 40 (family proceedings rules) is amended as follows.U.K.
(2)In subsection (1) for “by the Lord Chancellor together with any four or more of the following persons, namely—” substitute “ by a committee known as the Family Proceedings Rule Committee, which is to consist of the following persons— ”.
(3)For subsection (3) substitute—
“(3)The members of the Family Proceedings Rule Committee, other than those eligible to act by virtue of their office, are appointed under subsection (3ZA) or (3ZB).
(3ZA)The Lord Chief Justice must appoint the persons referred to in paragraphs (b), (c) (d) and (e) of subsection (1), after consulting the Lord Chancellor.
(3ZB)The Lord Chancellor must appoint the persons referred to in paragraphs (f) and (g) of subsection (1), after consulting the Lord Chief Justice.
(3ZC)A person is to be appointed under subsection (3ZA) or (3ZB) for such period as the Lord Chancellor determines after consulting the Lord Chief Justice.”
(4)Omit subsection (5).
(5)In relation to the enactment referred to in this paragraph, the original amending provision is paragraph 278(a) of Schedule 8 to the Courts Act 2003.
381(1)After section 40 insert—U.K.
“40AProcess for making rules of court under section 40
(1)Family proceedings rules must be—
(a)signed by a majority of the members of the Family Proceedings Rule Committee, and
(b)submitted to the Lord Chancellor.
(2)The Lord Chancellor may allow or disallow rules so made.
(3)If the Lord Chancellor disallows rules, he must give the Committee written reasons for doing so.
(4)Rules so made and allowed by the Lord Chancellor—
(a)come into force on such day as the Lord Chancellor directs, and
(b)are to be contained in a statutory instrument to which the Statutory Instruments Act 1946 applies as if the instrument contained rules made by a Minister of the Crown.
(5)A statutory instrument containing Family Proceedings rules is subject to annulment in pursuance of a resolution of either House of Parliament.
(6)In this section and section 40B “Family Proceedings rules” means rules of court made under section 40.
40BRules to be made if required by Lord Chancellor
(1)This section applies if the Lord Chancellor gives the Family Proceedings Rule Committee written notice that he thinks it is expedient for Family Proceedings rules to include provision that would achieve a purpose specified in the notice.
(2)The Committee must make such Family Proceedings rules as it considers necessary to achieve the specified purpose.
(3)Those rules must be—
(a)made within a reasonable period after the Lord Chancellor gives notice to the Committee;
(b)made in accordance with section 40A.”
(2)The enactment referred to in this paragraph, for the purposes of paragraph 361(3), is section 40 of the Matrimonial and Family Proceedings Act 1984 (c. 42), and in relation to that enactment the original amending provision is paragraph 278(a) of Schedule 8 to the Courts Act 2003 (c. 39).
Railways Act 1993 (c. 43)U.K.
382U.K.The Railways Act 1993 is amended as follows.
383(1)In section 91 (transfer schemes: general), in subsection (7)(c) for “Lord Chancellor” substitute “ Chairman of the Royal Institution of Chartered Surveyors in Northern Ireland ”.U.K.
(2)In relation to the enactment referred to in this paragraph, the original amending provision is section 274 of, and Schedule 31 to, the Transport Act 2000 (c. 38).
384(1)Schedule 8 (transfers by transfer scheme) is amended as follows.U.K.
(2)In paragraph 14 (third parties affected by vesting provisions), in sub-paragraph (5)(c) for “Lord Chancellor” substitute “ Chairman for the time being of the Royal Institution of Chartered Surveyors in Northern Ireland ”.
(3)In relation to the enactment referred to in this paragraph, the original amending provision is section 274 of, and Schedule 31 to, the Transport Act 2000.
Civil Procedure Act 1997 (c. 12)U.K.
385(1)Section 2 of the Civil Procedure Act 1997 (Civil Procedure Rule Committee) is amended as follows.U.K.
(2)After subsection (8) insert—
“(9)If the Lord Chancellor disallows rules under subsection (8), he must give the Civil Procedure Rule Committee written reasons for doing so.”
(3)In relation to the enactment referred to in this paragraph, the original amending provision is section 85(1) of the Courts Act 2003 (c. 39).
Justices of the Peace Act 1997 (c. 25)U.K.
386(1)The Justices of the Peace Act 1997 is amended as follows.U.K.
(2)In relation to the enactments in that Act referred to below, the original amending provision is section 6(4) of the Courts Act 2003.
387(1)Section 1 (Commission areas) is amended as follows.U.K.
(2)In subsection (2) for “by the Lord Chancellor by order made by statutory instrument” substitute “ by order made by the Lord Chancellor, after consulting the Lord Chief Justice, by statutory instrument ”.
(3)After subsection (3) insert—
“(4)The Lord Chief Justice may nominate a judicial office holder (as defined in section 109(4) of the Constitutional Reform Act 2005) to exercise his functions under this section.”
388(1)Section 4 (petty sessions areas) is amended as follows.U.K.
(2)In subsection (2) for “by the Lord Chancellor by order made by statutory instrument” substitute “ by order made by the Lord Chancellor, after consulting the Lord Chief Justice, by statutory instrument ”.
(3)After subsection (3) insert—
“(4)The Lord Chief Justice may nominate a judicial office holder (as defined in section 109(4) of the Constitutional Reform Act 2005) to exercise his functions under this section.”
389U.K.In section 5 (appointment and removal of justices of the peace), in subsection (1) for “in like manner” substitute “ by the Lord Chancellor with the concurrence of the Lord Chief Justice ”.
390(1)Section 6 (residence qualification) is amended as follows.U.K.
(2)In subsection (3) for “Lord Chancellor is” substitute “ Lord Chancellor and the Lord Chief Justice are both ”.
(3)After subsection (4) insert—
“(5)The Lord Chief Justice may nominate a judicial office holder (as defined in section 109(4) of the Constitutional Reform Act 2005) to exercise his functions under this section.”
391U.K.In section 7 (supplemental list for England and Wales), in subsection (4)—
(a)after “Lord Chancellor may” insert “ , with the concurrence of the Lord Chief Justice, ”;
(b)for “Lord Chancellor is” substitute “ Lord Chancellor and the Lord Chief Justice are both ”.
392U.K.In section 8 (removal of name from supplemental list), in subsection (1) after “Lord Chancellor” insert “ , with the concurrence of the Lord Chief Justice, ”.
393(1)Section 9 (effect of entry of name in supplemental list) is amended as follows.U.K.
(2)In subsection (3) for “by the Lord Chancellor” substitute “ by the Lord Chief Justice ”.
(3)After subsection (4) insert—
“(5)The Lord Chief Justice may not give an authorisation under subsection (3) unless the Lord Chancellor concurs.
(6)The Lord Chief Justice may nominate a judicial office holder (as defined in section 109(4) of the Constitutional Reform Act 2005) to exercise his functions under subsection (3).”
394U.K.In section 10A (appointment and tenure), in subsection (3) after “Lord Chancellor” insert “ , with the concurrence of the Lord Chief Justice, ”.
395U.K.In section 10B (deputies), in subsection (2) after “Lord Chancellor” insert “ , with the concurrence of the Lord Chief Justice, ”.
396(1)Section 10C (status) is amended as follows.U.K.
(2)In subsection (3) for “given by the Lord Chancellor from time to time” substitute “ given by the Lord Chief Justice from time to time after consulting the Lord Chancellor ”.
(3)After subsection (4) insert—
“(5)The Lord Chief Justice may nominate a judicial office holder (as defined in section 109(4) of the Constitutional Reform Act 2005) to exercise his functions under this section.”
397(1)Section 24 (rules as to chairmanship and size of bench) is amended as follows.U.K.
(2)In subsection (5) omit “by the Lord Chancellor”.
(3)After subsection (5) insert—
“(6)Rules under this section that relate to the matters referred to in any of paragraphs (c) to (e) of subsection (2) are to be made by the Lord Chief Justice after consulting the Lord Chancellor.
(7)Any other rules under this section are to be made by the Lord Chancellor after consulting the Lord Chief Justice.
(8)The Lord Chief Justice may nominate a judicial office holder (as defined in section 109(4) of the Constitutional Reform Act 2005) to exercise his functions under this section.”
398U.K.In section 25 (records of justices of the peace) after subsection (4) insert—
“(5)The Lord Chancellor must consult the Lord Chief Justice before—
(a)designating a justice under subsection (1), or
(b)giving a direction under subsection (2).
(6)The Lord Chief Justice may nominate a judicial office holder (as defined in section 109(4) of the Constitutional Reform Act 2005) to exercise his functions under this section.”
399(1)Section 26 (Greater Manchester, Merseyside and Lancashire) is amended as follows.U.K.
(2)In subsection (2)—
(a)in paragraph (a) after “Lord Chancellor” insert “ or the Lord Chief Justice ”;
(b)in paragraph (b)—
(i)after “Lord Chancellor” in the first place insert “ or the Lord Chief Justice ”;
(ii)for “the Lord Chancellor” in the second place substitute “ that person, or those persons, ”.
(3)In subsection (3)—
(a)in paragraph (a) after “Lord Chancellor” insert “ or the Lord Chief Justice ”;
(b)in paragraph (b)—
(i)after “Lord Chancellor” in the first place insert “ or the Lord Chief Justice ”;
(ii)for “the Lord Chancellor” in the second place substitute “ that person, or those persons, ”.
(4)After subsection (3) insert—
“(4)The Lord Chief Justice may nominate a judicial office holder (as defined in section 109(4) of the Constitutional Reform Act 2005) to exercise his functions under this section.”
400(1)Section 27A (magistrates' courts committees) is amended as follows.U.K.
(2)In subsection (2) for “by the Lord Chancellor by order made by statutory instrument” substitute “ by order made by the Lord Chancellor, after consulting the Lord Chief Justice, by statutory instrument ”.
(3)After subsection (3) insert—
“(4)The Lord Chief Justice may nominate a judicial office holder (as defined in section 109(4) of the Constitutional Reform Act 2005) to exercise his functions under this section.”
401(1)Section 27B (alteration of committee areas) is amended as follows.U.K.
(2)In subsection (4) before paragraph (a) insert—
“(za)the Lord Chief Justice;”.
(3)After subsection (10) insert—
“(11)The Lord Chief Justice may nominate a judicial office holder (as defined in section 109(4) of the Constitutional Reform Act 2005) to exercise his functions under this section.”
402(1)Section 33 (alteration of petty sessions areas) is amended as follows.U.K.
(2)In subsection (2) after “Lord Chancellor” in the first place insert “ after he has consulted the Lord Chief Justice ”.
(3)In subsection (3)—
(a)in paragraph (a) after “Lord Chancellor thinks fit” insert “ after consulting the Lord Chief Justice ”;
(b)for paragraph (b) substitute—
“(b)a magistrates' court committee fail to comply within six months with a direction under subsection (2);
(bb)the Lord Chancellor is, after consulting the Lord Chief Justice, dissatisfied with the draft order or report submitted in pursuance of such a direction; or”.
(4)After subsection (3) insert—
“(3A)The Lord Chancellor may only make an order to which subsection (3) applies after consulting the Lord Chief Justice.”
(5)In subsection (4) after “appear to the Lord Chancellor” insert “ , after consulting the Lord Chief Justice, ”.
(6)After subsection (5) insert—
“(6)The Lord Chief Justice may nominate a judicial office holder (as defined in section 109(4) of the Constitutional Reform Act 2005) to exercise his functions under this section.”
403(1)Section 53A (costs in legal proceedings) is amended as follows.U.K.
(2)In subsection (4) after “Lord Chancellor may” insert “ , after consulting the Lord Chief Justice, ”.
(3)After subsection (6) insert—
“(7)The Lord Chief Justice may nominate a judicial office holder (as defined in section 109(4) of the Constitutional Reform Act 2005) to exercise his functions under this section.”
404(1)Section 54 (indemnification of justices and justices' clerks) is amended as follows.U.K.
(2)In subsection (6) for “by the Lord Chancellor” substitute “ by the Lord Chief Justice after consulting the Lord Chancellor ”.
(3)After subsection (9) insert—
“(10)The Lord Chief Justice may nominate a judicial office holder (as defined in section 109(4) of the Constitutional Reform Act 2005) to exercise his functions under subsection (6).”
405(1)Section 64 (training courses) is amended as follows.U.K.
(2)In subsection (1) for “by the Lord Chancellor” substitute “ by the Lord Chief Justice after consulting the Lord Chancellor ”.
(3)After subsection (3) insert—
“(4)The Lord Chief Justice may nominate a judicial office holder (as defined in section 109(4) of the Constitutional Reform Act 2005) to exercise his functions under subsection (1).”
Data Protection Act 1998 (c. 29)U.K.
406(1)Paragraph 3 of Schedule 6 to the Data Protection Act 1998 (constitution of Tribunal in national security cases) is amended as follows.U.K.
(2)That paragraph becomes sub-paragraph (1) of paragraph 3.
(3)After that sub-paragraph insert—
“(2)The Lord Chancellor may designate a person to preside under this paragraph only with the concurrence of all of the following—
(a)the Lord Chief Justice of England and Wales;
(b)the Lord President of the Court of Session;
(c)the Lord Chief Justice of Northern Ireland.
(3)The Lord Chief Justice of England and Wales may nominate a judicial office holder (as defined in section 109(4) of the Constitutional Reform Act 2005) to exercise his functions under this paragraph.
(4)The Lord President of the Court of Session may nominate a judge of the Court of Session who is a member of the First or Second Division of the Inner House of that Court to exercise his functions under this paragraph.
(5)The Lord Chief Justice of Northern Ireland may nominate any of the following to exercise his functions under this paragraph—
(a)the holder of one of the offices listed in Schedule 1 to the Justice (Northern Ireland) Act 2002;
(b)a Lord Justice of Appeal (as defined in section 88 of that Act).”
(4)In relation to the enactment referred to in this paragraph, the original amending provision is paragraph 2 of Schedule 4 to the Freedom of Information Act 2000 (c. 36).
Nationality, Immigration and Asylum Act 2002 (c. 41)U.K.
407(1)In Schedule 5 to the Nationality, Immigration and Asylum Act 2002 (Immigration Appeal Tribunal), paragraph 3 (appointment of President) is amended as follows.U.K.
(2)That paragraph becomes sub-paragraph (1) of paragraph 3.
(3)In that sub-paragraph, after “Lord Chancellor shall” insert “ , with the concurrence of the Lord Chief Justice of England and Wales, the Lord President of the Court of Session and the Lord Chief Justice of Northern Ireland, ”.
(4)After that sub-paragraph insert—
“(2)The Lord Chief Justice of England and Wales may nominate a judicial office holder (as defined in section 109(4) of the Constitutional Reform Act 2005) to exercise his functions under this paragraph.
(3)The Lord President of the Court of Session may nominate a judge of the Court of Session who is a member of the First or Second Division of the Inner House of that Court to exercise his functions under this paragraph.
(4)The Lord Chief Justice of Northern Ireland may nominate any of the following to exercise his functions under this paragraph—
(a)the holder of one of the offices listed in Schedule 1 to the Justice (Northern Ireland) Act 2002;
(b)a Lord Justice of Appeal (as defined in section 88 of that Act).”
(5)In relation to the enactment referred to in this paragraph, the original amending provision is section 26(5)(b) of the Asylum and Immigration (Treatment of Claimants, etc.) Act 2004 (c. 19).
Yn ddilys o 31/08/2005
Section 15
SCHEDULE 5U.K.Functions under legislation relating to Northern Ireland
Yn ddilys o 03/04/2006
Part 1 U.K.Amendments
Land Law (Ireland) Act 1896 (c. 47)U.K.
1(1)Section 24 of the Land Law (Ireland) Act 1896 (power to nominate judge to act as additional land judge) is amended as follows.U.K.
(2)For “Lord Chancellor” in each place substitute “ Lord Chief Justice ”.
(3)At the end of the section insert— “The Lord Chief Justice may nominate any of the following to exercise his functions under this section—
(a)the holder of one of the offices listed in Schedule 1 to the Justice (Northern Ireland) Act 2002;
(b)a Lord Justice of Appeal (as defined in section 88 of that Act).”
Coroners Act (Northern Ireland) 1959 (c. 15 (N.I.))U.K.
2U.K.The Coroners Act (Northern Ireland) 1959 is amended as follows.
3U.K.In section 2 (appointment of coroners), after subsection (1) insert—
“(1A)The Lord Chief Justice must also be consulted before any determination is made under subsection (1) as to numbers of coroners or deputy coroners.
(1B)The Lord Chief Justice may nominate any of the following to exercise his functions under subsection (1A)—
(a)the holder of one of the offices listed in Schedule 1 to the Justice (Northern Ireland) Act 2002;
(b)a Lord Justice of Appeal (as defined in section 88 of that Act).”
4(1)Section 3 (power to amalgamate districts) is amended as follows.U.K.
(2)That section becomes subsection (1) of section 3.
(3)After that subsection insert—
“(2)The Lord Chief Justice must be consulted before any date is appointed and before any order is made under subsection (1).
(3)The Lord Chief Justice may nominate any of the following to exercise his functions under subsection (2)—
(a)the holder of one of the offices listed in Schedule 1 to the Justice (Northern Ireland) Act 2002;
(b)a Lord Justice of Appeal (as defined in section 88 of that Act).”
5(1)Section 6 (coroner to hold inquests in district in which he is appointed) is amended as follows.U.K.
(2)In subsection (2) for “Lord Chancellor may” in each place substitute “ Lord Chief Justice may, after consultation with the Lord Chancellor, ”.
(3)After subsection (2) insert—
“(3)The Lord Chief Justice may nominate any of the following to exercise his functions under subsection (2)—
(a)the holder of one of the offices listed in Schedule 1 to the Justice (Northern Ireland) Act 2002;
(b)a Lord Justice of Appeal (as defined in section 88 of that Act).”
6(1)Section 36 is amended as follows.U.K.
(2)In subsection (1)—
(a)for “The Lord Chancellor may by rules” substitute “ Rules under this section may ”;
(b)in paragraph (a) omit “made after consultation with the Treasury,”;
(c)in paragraph (b) omit “made after consultation with the Lord Chief Justice”.
(3)After subsection (1) insert—
“(1A)It is for the Lord Chancellor to make rules under subsection (1)(a), after consultation with the Treasury.
(1B)It is for the Lord Chief Justice to make rules under subsection (1)(b), in accordance with subsections (1C) to (1G).
(1C)The Lord Chief Justice may make rules under subsection (1)(b) only with the agreement of the Lord Chancellor.
(1D)If the Lord Chancellor does not agree such rules made by the Lord Chief Justice, the Lord Chancellor must give the Lord Chief Justice written reasons why he does not agree the rules.
(1E)Subsection (1F) applies if the Lord Chancellor gives the Lord Chief Justice written notice that he thinks it is expedient for rules under subsection (1)(b) to include provision that would achieve a purpose specified in the notice.
(1F)The Lord Chief Justice must make such rules under subsection (1)(b) as he considers necessary to achieve the specified purpose.
(1G)Those rules must be—
(a)made within a reasonable period after the Lord Chancellor gives notice under subsection (1E);
(b)made in accordance with the relevant provisions of this section.
(1H)The Lord Chief Justice may nominate any of the following to exercise his functions under subsections (1B), (1C) and (1F)—
(a)the holder of one of the offices listed in Schedule 1 to the Justice (Northern Ireland) Act 2002;
(b)a Lord Justice of Appeal (as defined in section 88 of that Act).”
County Courts Act (Northern Ireland) 1959 (c. 25 (N.I.))U.K.
7U.K.The County Courts Act (Northern Ireland) 1959 is amended as follows.
8U.K.In section 102 (appointment and assignment of judges), in subsections (2) and (4) for “Lord Chancellor” substitute “ Lord Chief Justice ”.
9U.K.In section 105 (tenure and oaths of office and retirement of judges), in subsection (4) omit “Lord Chancellor's”.
10U.K.In section 107 (deputy judges), in subsection (4) omit “Lord Chancellor's”.
11U.K.In section 116 (pensions of judges), after subsection (5) insert—
“(5A)The Lord Chancellor must consult the Lord Chief Justice before—
(a)making a recommendation in a case that falls within subsection (1)(b), or
(b)requiring a person to resume the duties of judge in accordance with subsection (4).
(5B)The Lord Chief Justice may nominate any of the following to exercise his functions under subsection (5A)—
(a)the holder of one of the offices listed in Schedule 1 to the Justice (Northern Ireland) Act 2002;
(b)a Lord Justice of Appeal (as defined in section 88 of that Act).”
Resident Magistrates' Pensions Act (Northern Ireland) 1960 (c. 2 (N.I.))U.K.
12U.K.The Resident Magistrates' Pensions Act (Northern Ireland) 1960 is amended as follows.
13U.K.In section 1 (retiring age of resident magistrates), omit “Lord Chancellor's”.
14U.K.In section 2 (pensions of resident magistrates), after subsection (6) insert—
“(7)The Lord Chancellor must consult the Lord Chief Justice before—
(a)satisfying himself as mentioned in subsection (3)(c), or
(b)requiring a person to resume the duties of resident magistrate in accordance with subsection (4).
(8)The Lord Chief Justice may nominate any of the following to exercise his functions under subsection (7)—
(a)the holder of one of the offices listed in Schedule 1 to the Justice (Northern Ireland) Act 2002 (c. 26);
(b)a Lord Justice of Appeal (as defined in section 88 of that Act).”
15U.K.Omit section 11 (resident magistrates already serving).
Magistrates' Courts Act (Northern Ireland) 1964 (c. 21 (N.I.))U.K.
16U.K.In section 9 of the Magistrates' Courts Act (Northern Ireland) 1964 (appointment and assignment of resident magistrates), in subsections (3) and (5) for “Lord Chancellor” substitute “ Lord Chief Justice ”.
Lands Tribunal and Compensation Act (Northern Ireland) 1964 (c. 29 (N.I.))U.K.
17U.K.In section 2 of the Lands Tribunal and Compensation Act (Northern Ireland) 1964 (terms of appointment of members of Lands Tribunal), in subsection (1)(b) omit “Lord Chancellor's”.
Children and Young Persons Act (Northern Ireland) 1968 (c. 34 (N.I.))U.K.
18(1)Schedule 2 to the Children and Young Persons Act (Northern Ireland) 1968 (constitution of juvenile courts) is amended as follows.U.K.
(2)In paragraph 8 (regulations), after “Lord Chancellor” insert “ after consultation with the Lord Chief Justice ”.
Land Registration Act (Northern Ireland) 1970 (c. 18 (N.I.))U.K.
19U.K.In section 85 of the Land Registration Act (Northern Ireland) 1970, after subsection (2) insert—
“(2A)The Lord Chief Justice may nominate any of the following to exercise his functions under subsection (2)(a)—
(a)the holder of one of the offices listed in Schedule 1 to the Justice (Northern Ireland) Act 2002;
(b)a Lord Justice of Appeal (as defined in section 88 of that Act).”
Misuse of Drugs Tribunal (Northern Ireland) Rules 1974 (S.R. 1974/256)U.K.
20(1)Rule 2 of the Misuse of Drugs Tribunal (Northern Ireland) Rules 1974 (interpretation) is amended as follows.U.K.
(2)In paragraph (1), in the definition of “the chairman” for “by the Lord Chief Justice of Northern Ireland” substitute “ in accordance with paragraph 1(1)(a) of Schedule 3 to the Act ”.
Social Security (Northern Ireland) Act 1975 (c. 15)U.K.
21(1)Schedule 10 to the Social Security (Northern Ireland) Act 1975 (supplementary provision as to Local Tribunals, Commissioners etc) is amended as follows.U.K.
(2)In paragraph 6 (Commissioners' pensions), after sub-paragraph (1) insert—
“(1ZA)The Lord Chancellor must consult the Lord Chief Justice before satisfying himself as mentioned in sub-paragraph (1)(c).
(1ZB)The Lord Chief Justice may nominate any of the following to exercise his functions under sub-paragraph (1ZA)—
(a)the holder of one of the offices listed in Schedule 1 to the Justice (Northern Ireland) Act 2002;
(b)a Lord Justice of Appeal (as defined in section 88 of that Act).”
(3)In paragraph 7 (Commissioners' pensions: supplementary), after sub-paragraph (5) insert—
“(5A)The Lord Chancellor must consult the Lord Chief Justice before requiring a person to resume the duties of Commissioner in accordance with sub-paragraph (5).
(5B)The Lord Chief Justice may nominate any of the following to exercise his functions under sub-paragraph (5A)—
(a)the holder of one of the offices listed in Schedule 1 to the Justice (Northern Ireland) Act 2002;
(b)a Lord Justice of Appeal (as defined in section 88 of that Act).”
Judicature (Northern Ireland) Act 1978 (c. 23)U.K.
22U.K.The Judicature (Northern Ireland) Act 1978 is amended as follows.
23(1)Section 7 (further assistance for transaction of judicial business) is amended as follows.U.K.
(2)In subsections (1) and (2) for “Lord Chancellor” substitute “ Lord Chief Justice ”.
(3)After subsection (4) insert—
“(5)The Lord Chief Justice may nominate any of the following to exercise his functions under this section—
(a)the holder of one of the offices listed in Schedule 1 to the Justice (Northern Ireland) Act 2002;
(b)a Lord Justice of Appeal (as defined in section 88 of that Act).”
24(1)Section 47 (exercise of jurisdiction by Crown Court) is amended as follows.U.K.
(2)In subsection (2)—
(a)for “Lord Chancellor” in the first place substitute “ Lord Chief Justice ”;
(b)for “Lord Chancellor after consultation with the Lord Chief Justice” substitute “ Lord Chief Justice ”.
(3)In subsection (3) for “Lord Chancellor after consultation with the Lord Chief Justice” substitute “ Lord Chief Justice ”.
(4)In subsection (5) after “Lord Chancellor” insert “ after consultation with the Lord Chief Justice ”.
(5)After subsection (6) insert—
“(7)The Lord Chief Justice may nominate any of the following to exercise his functions under this section—
(a)the holder of one of the offices listed in Schedule 1 to the Justice (Northern Ireland) Act 2002;
(b)a Lord Justice of Appeal (as defined in section 88 of that Act).”
25U.K.In section 48 (committal for trial on indictment), in subsection (1)(c) for “Lord Chancellor” substitute “ Lord Chief Justice ”.
26U.K.In section 52 (Crown Court rules), in subsection (1) for the words from the beginning to “prescribing—” substitute—
“(1)Subject to any statutory provision, Crown Court rules may be made in accordance with section 53A for the purpose of regulating and prescribing—”.
27(1)Section 53 (membership of the Crown Court Rules Committee) is amended as follows.U.K.
(2)In subsection (1)(c) and (d) for “Lord Chancellor after consultation with the Lord Chief Justice” substitute “ Lord Chief Justice ”.
(3)After subsection (1) insert—
“(1A)The Lord Chief Justice may nominate any of the following to exercise his functions under subsection (1)(c) or (d)—
(a)the holder of one of the offices listed in Schedule 1 to the Justice (Northern Ireland) Act 2002;
(b)a Lord Justice of Appeal (as defined in section 88 of that Act).”
28U.K.After section 53 insert—
“53AMaking of Crown Court rules
(1)It is for the Crown Court Rules Committee to make Crown Court rules.
(2)After making Crown Court rules the Committee must submit them to the Lord Chancellor.
(3)The Lord Chancellor must allow or disallow Crown Court rules submitted to him.
(4)Crown Court rules have effect only if allowed by the Lord Chancellor.
(5)If the Lord Chancellor disallows Crown Court rules, the Lord Chancellor must give the Committee written reasons why he has disallowed them.
(6)Subsection (7) applies if the Lord Chancellor gives the Committee written notice that he thinks it is expedient for Crown Court rules to include provision that would achieve a purpose specified in the notice.
(7)The Committee must make such Crown Court rules as it considers necessary to achieve the specified purpose.
(8)Those Crown Court rules must be—
(a)made within a reasonable period after the Lord Chancellor gives notice under subsection (6);
(b)made in accordance with this section.”
29(1)Section 55 (rules of court) is amended as follows.U.K.
(2)In subsection (1) for the words from the beginning to “with respect to—” substitute—
“(1)Subject to any statutory provision, rules may be made in accordance with section 55A with respect to—”.
(3)In subsection (2) for the words from the beginning to “make rules—” substitute—
“(2)Subject to any statutory provision, rules may be made in accordance with section 55A—”.
(4)In subsection (3) for “made by the Rules Committee” substitute “ made under this section ”.
30U.K.After section 55 insert—
“55AMaking of rules of Court
(1)It is for the Rules Committee to make rules under section 55(1) or (2).
(2)After making such rules the Rule Committee must submit them to the Lord Chancellor.
(3)The Lord Chancellor must allow or disallow rules submitted to him.
(4)Rules submitted to the Lord Chancellor have effect only if allowed by him.
(5)If the Lord Chancellor disallows rules submitted to him, he must give the Committee written reasons why he has disallowed them.
(6)Subsection (7) applies if the Lord Chancellor gives the Rules Committee written notice that he thinks it is expedient for rules under section 55(1) or (2) to include provision that would achieve a purpose specified in the notice.
(7)The Rules Committee must make such rules as it considers necessary to achieve the specified purpose.
(8)Those rules must be—
(a)made within a reasonable period after the Lord Chancellor gives notice under subsection (6);
(b)made in accordance with this section.”
31(1)Section 58 (sittings of High Court and Court of Appeal) is amended as follows.U.K.
(2)In subsection (2) for “Lord Chancellor” substitute “ Lord Chief Justice ”.
(3)After subsection (3) insert—
“(4)The Lord Chief Justice may nominate any of the following to exercise his functions under this section—
(a)the holder of one of the offices listed in Schedule 1 to the Justice (Northern Ireland) Act 2002;
(b)a Lord Justice of Appeal (as defined in section 88 of that Act).”
32(1)Section 60 (taxation of costs) is amended as follows.U.K.
(2)In subsection (1) for “Lord Chancellor after consultation with the Lord Chief Justice” substitute “ Lord Chief Justice ”.
(3)After subsection (2) insert—
“(3)The Lord Chief Justice may nominate any of the following to exercise his functions under this section—
(a)the holder of one of the offices listed in Schedule 1 to the Justice (Northern Ireland) Act 2002;
(b)a Lord Justice of Appeal (as defined in section 88 of that Act).”
33(1)Section 68 (departments of the Supreme Court) is amended as follows.U.K.
(2)In subsection (2)(b) for “Lord Chancellor” substitute “ Lord Chief Justice ”.
(3)In subsection (4) for “Lord Chancellor” substitute “ Lord Chief Justice ”.
(4)After subsection (6) insert—
“(7)The Lord Chief Justice may nominate any of the following to exercise his functions under this section—
(a)the holder of one of the offices listed in Schedule 1 to the Justice (Northern Ireland) Act 2002;
(b)a Lord Justice of Appeal (as defined in section 88 of that Act).”
34U.K.In section 71 (tenure of office of statutory officers), in subsection (3) omit “Lord Chancellor's”.
35(1)Section 75 (Official Solicitor) is amended as follows.U.K.
(2)In subsection (2)(b) for “Lord Chancellor” substitute “ Lord Chief Justice ”.
(3)After subsection (2) insert—
“(2A)The Lord Chief Justice may nominate any of the following to exercise his functions under subsection (2)(b)—
(a)the holder of one of the offices listed in Schedule 1 to the Justice (Northern Ireland) Act 2002;
(b)a Lord Justice of Appeal (as defined in section 88 of that Act).”
36(1)Section 103 (appointment of justices of the peace) is amended as follows.U.K.
(2)In subsection (6) after “Lord Chancellor” insert “ , after consultation with the Lord Chief Justice, ”.
(3)In subsection (7) after “Lord Chancellor may direct” insert “ , after consultation with the Lord Chief Justice, ”.
37U.K.Omit section 104 (under-sheriffs).
38(1)Section 112 (oaths and affidavits) is amended as follows.U.K.
(2)In subsection (3) for “Lord Chancellor” substitute “ Lord Chief Justice ”.
(3)After subsection (7) insert—
“(8)The Lord Chief Justice may nominate any of the following to exercise his functions under subsection (3)—
(a)the holder of one of the offices listed in Schedule 1 to the Justice (Northern Ireland) Act 2002;
(b)a Lord Justice of Appeal (as defined in section 88 of that Act).”
39U.K.In section 119 (making and control of subordinate legislation), in subsection (5) omit “on the Lord Chancellor”.
40(1)Schedule 6 (transitional provisions) is amended as follows.U.K.
(2)Omit paragraph 6(a).
(3)In paragraph 9(b) after “Lord Chancellor” insert “ after consultation with the Lord Chief Justice ”.
(4)After paragraph 9 insert—
“9AThe Lord Chief Justice may nominate any of the following to exercise his functions under paragraph 9—
(a)the holder of one of the offices listed in Schedule 1 to the Justice (Northern Ireland) Act 2002;
(b)a Lord Justice of Appeal (as defined in section 88 of that Act).”
(5)Omit paragraphs 11(3), 14 and 17.
Matrimonial Causes (Northern Ireland) Order 1978 (S.I. 1978/1045 (N.I. 15))U.K.
41(1)Article 48 (the court) is amended as follows.U.K.
(2)In paragraph (1)—
(a)for “by the Lord Chancellor” substitute “ in accordance with paragraph (1A) ”;
(b)omit the words after sub-paragraph (b).
(3)After paragraph (1) insert—
“(1A)It is for the Lord Chancellor, with the concurrence of the Lord Chief Justice, to make an order such as is mentioned in paragraph (1)(b).”
(1B)The Lord Chief Justice of Northern Ireland may nominate any of the following to exercise his functions under paragraph (1A)—
(a)the holder of one of the offices listed in Schedule 1 to the Justice (Northern Ireland) Act 2002;
(b)a Lord Justice of Appeal (as defined in section 88 of that Act).”
Reserve and Auxiliary Forces (Protection of Civil Interests) (Northern Ireland) Order 1979 (S.I. 1979/291)U.K.
42(1)Article 7 of the Reserve and Auxiliary Forces (Protection of Civil Interests) (Northern Ireland) Order 1979 (modifications of section 5 of Reserve and Auxiliary Forces (Protection of Civil Interests) Act 1951 in application to Northern Ireland) is amended as follows.U.K.
(2)After paragraph (1) insert—
“(1A)In subsection (2) for “Rules may be made in accordance with Part 1 of Schedule 1 to the Constitutional Reform Act 2005” substitute “ The Lord Chief Justice of Northern Ireland may, with the concurrence of the Lord Chancellor, make rules ”.
(1B)For subsections (5A) and (5B) substitute—
“(5A)The Lord Chancellor must consult the Lord Chief Justice of Northern Ireland before making rules under subsection (1) that relate to Northern Ireland.”.”
(3)In paragraph (2), in subsections (6) and (7) substituted for subsection (6) of the 1951 Act, for “this section” substitute “ subsection (1) ”.
(4)After paragraph (2) insert—
“(3)At the end of that section insert—
“(8)The Lord Chief Justice of Northern Ireland may nominate any of the following to exercise his functions under this section—
(a)the holder of one of the offices listed in Schedule 1 to the Justice (Northern Ireland) Act 2002;
(b)a Lord Justice of Appeal (as defined in section 88 of that Act).”.”
Administration of Estates (Northern Ireland) Order 1979 (S.I. 1979/1575 (N.I. 14))U.K.
43U.K.The Administration of Estates (Northern Ireland) Order 1979 is amended as follows.
44(1)Article 20 (inheritance tax accounts) is amended as follows.U.K.
(2)In paragraph (2) for “Lord Chancellor” substitute “ Lord Chief Justice ”.
(3)After paragraph (2) insert—
“(2A)The Lord Chief Justice of Northern Ireland may nominate any of the following to exercise his functions under paragraph (2)—
(a)the holder of one of the offices listed in Schedule 1 to the Justice (Northern Ireland) Act 2002;
(b)a Lord Justice of Appeal (as defined in section 88 of that Act).”
45(1)Article 23 (keeping and inspection of wills and other documents) is amended as follows.U.K.
(2)In paragraph (1) for “Lord Chancellor” in the second place substitute “ Lord Chief Justice ”.
(3)In paragraph (2) for “Lord Chancellor” substitute “ Lord Chief Justice ”.
(4)After paragraph (4) insert—
“(5)The Lord Chief Justice may nominate any of the following to exercise his functions under this Article—
(a)the holder of one of the offices listed in Schedule 1 to the Justice (Northern Ireland) Act 2002;
(b)a Lord Justice of Appeal (as defined in section 88 of that Act).”
46(1)Article 24 (records of grants) is amended as follows.U.K.
(2)In paragraph (2) for “Lord Chancellor” substitute “ Lord Chief Justice ”.
(3)After paragraph (2) insert—
“(3)The Lord Chief Justice may nominate any of the following to exercise his functions under this Article—
(a)the holder of one of the offices listed in Schedule 1 to the Justice (Northern Ireland) Act 2002;
(b)a Lord Justice of Appeal (as defined in section 88 of that Act).”
47(1)Article 26 (copies of wills etc to be delivered to Inland Revenue Commissioners).U.K.
(2)In paragraph (1) for “Lord Chancellor” in each place substitute “ Lord Chief Justice ”.
(3)After paragraph (1) insert—
“(1A)The Lord Chief Justice may nominate any of the following to exercise his functions under this Article—
(a)the holder of one of the offices listed in Schedule 1 to the Justice (Northern Ireland) Act 2002;
(b)a Lord Justice of Appeal (as defined in section 88 of that Act).”
County Courts (Northern Ireland) Order 1980 (S.I. 1980/397 (N.I. 3))U.K.
48U.K.The County Courts (Northern Ireland) Order 1980 is amended as follows.
49U.K.In Article 2 (interpretation), in paragraph (5) omit“on the Lord Chancellor”.
50U.K.In Article 3 (county courts to be held for divisions), in paragraph (1) after “Lord Chancellor may” insert “ , after consultation with the Lord Chief Justice, ”.
51U.K.In Article 4 (directions as to holding of courts), for “Lord Chancellor” in each place substitute “ Lord Chief Justice ”.
52U.K.In Article 5 (directions for courts to sit otherwise in courthouses), for “Lord Chancellor” substitute “ Lord Chief Justice ”.
53(1)Article 6 (appointment of days for holding of ordinary sittings) is amended as follows.U.K.
(2)In paragraph (1) for “Lord Chancellor” substitute “ Lord Chief Justice ”.
(3)In paragraph (2) for “Lord Chancellor shall consult the Lord Chief Justice and” substitute “ Lord Chief Justice shall consult ”.
54U.K.In Article 7 (additional and extraordinary sittings), in paragraphs (1) and (2) for “Lord Chancellor” substitute “ Lord Chief Justice ”.
55U.K.In Article 22 (power to increase civil jurisdiction of county courts), after “Lord Chancellor may” insert “ , after consultation with the Lord Chief Justice, ”.
56U.K.In Article 46 (as amended by section 73(2) of the Justice (Northern Ireland) Act 2002), in paragraph (1)(a) for “Lord Chancellor” substitute “ Lord Chief Justice ”.
57U.K.In Article 47 (making of county court rules) for paragraphs (2) and (3) substitute—
“(2)County court rules must be certified under the hand of the members of the Rule Committee, or any three or more of them.
(3)After making and certifying county court rules the Rules Committee must submit them to the Lord Chancellor.
(4)The Lord Chancellor must, after consultation with the Lord Chief Justice, allow or disallow county court rules submitted to him.
(5)County court rules have effect only if the Lord Chancellor allows them.
(6)If the Lord Chancellor disallows county court rules, the Lord Chancellor must give the Rules Committee written reasons why he has disallowed them.
(7)County court rules allowed by the Lord Chancellor shall come into operation on such day as the Lord Chancellor shall direct.
(8)Paragraph (9) applies if the Lord Chancellor gives the Rules Committee written notice that he thinks it is expedient for county court rules to include provision that would achieve a purpose specified in the notice.
(9)The Rules Committee must make such county court rules as it considers necessary to achieve the specified purpose.
(10)Those rules must be—
(a)made within a reasonable period after the Lord Chancellor gives notice under paragraph (8);
(b)made in accordance with this Article.”
58U.K.In Article 56 (swearing of affidavits before designated court officer), in subsection (1) for “Lord Chancellor” substitute “ Lord Chief Justice ”.
59U.K.In Article 58 (furnishing of information by certain officers), at the end insert “ and furnish to the Lord Chief Justice such information as may be prescribed or required by the Lord Chief Justice. ”
Domestic Proceedings (Northern Ireland) Order 1980 (S.I. 1980/563 (N.I. 5)U.K.
60(1)Article 4 of the Domestic Proceedings (Northern Ireland) Order 1980 (powers of court to make provision for domestic proceedings) is amended as follows.U.K.
(2)In paragraph (3) after “may” insert “ , after consultation with the Lord Chief Justice, ”.
(3)After paragraph (3) insert—
“(3A)The Lord Chief Justice may nominate any of the following to exercise his functions under paragraph (3)—
(a)the holder of one of the offices listed in Schedule 1 to the Justice (Northern Ireland) Act 2002;
(b)a Lord Justice of Appeal (as defined in section 88 of that Act).”
(4)In paragraph (4) for the words from the beginning to “under” substitute “ Any order made under ”.
Magistrates' Courts (Northern Ireland) Order 1981 (S.I. 1981/1675 (N.I. 26))U.K.
61U.K.The Magistrates' Courts (Northern Ireland) Order 1981 is amended as follows.
62(1)Article 6A (costs in legal proceedings) is amended as follows.U.K.
(2)In paragraph (4) after “Lord Chancellor may” insert “ , after consultation with the Lord Chief Justice, ”.
(3)After paragraph (4) insert—
“(4A)The Lord Chief Justice of Northern Ireland may nominate any of the following to exercise his functions under paragraph (4)—
(a)the holder of one of the offices listed in Schedule 1 to the Justice (Northern Ireland) Act 2002;
(b)a Lord Justice of Appeal (as defined in section 88 of that Act).”
63(1)Article 11 (petty sessions and petty sessions districts) is amended as follows.U.K.
(2)In paragraph (2) after “Lord Chancellor may” insert “ , after consultation with the Lord Chief Justice, ”.
(3)In paragraph (3) for “Lord Chancellor” in each place substitute “ Lord Chief Justice ”.
64U.K.In Article 12 (holding of petty sessions in courthouse), in paragraph (a) for “Lord Chancellor” substitute “ Lord Chief Justice ”.
65(1)Article 13 (magistrates' courts rules) is amended as follows.U.K.
(2)In paragraph (1) omit the words from “or as” to “Article 14”.
(3)In paragraph (2) for “Lord Chancellor” substitute “ Lord Chief Justice ”.
(4)For paragraph (3) substitute—
“(3)It is for the Rules Committee to make such rules as are referred to in paragraph (1) (which may be known as “magistrates' courts rules”).
(3A)The Rules Committee may make magistrates' courts rules only—
(a)after consultation with the Lord Chancellor, and
(b)with the agreement of the Lord Chief Justice.
(3B)Paragraph (3C) applies if the Lord Chancellor gives the Rules Committee written notice that he thinks it is expedient for magistrates' courts rules to include provision that would achieve a purpose specified in the notice.
(3C)The Rules Committee must make such magistrates' courts rules as it considers necessary to achieve the specified purpose.
(3D)Those rules must be—
(a)made within a reasonable period after the Lord Chancellor gives notice under paragraph (3B);
(b)made in accordance with this Article.”
(5)In paragraph (5), after “member of the committee” insert “ as the Lord Chief Justice shall designate ”.
66U.K.Omit Article 14 (recommendations by Rules Committee to Lord Chancellor).
67U.K.In Article 15 (rules under or for the purpose of particular enactments), in paragraph (2) for “Lord Chancellor” substitute “ Lord Chief Justice ”.
68U.K.In Article 37 (discharge or committal for trial), in paragraph (5) omit “Without prejudice to Article 14,”.
69U.K.In Article 168 (directions), omit “on the Lord Chancellor”.
Pensions Appeal Tribunals (Northern Ireland) Rules 1981 (S.R. 1981/231)U.K.
70U.K.The Pensions Tribunals (Northern Ireland) Rules 1981 is amended as follows.
71U.K.In rule 2 (interpretation), in paragraph (1)—
(a)for the definition of “the Chairman” substitute—
““the Chairman” means the person who is chairman of a Tribunal in accordance with the Schedule to the Act (including any directions under paragraph 3A of that Schedule)”;
(b)in the definition of “the Deputy President” omit “by the Lord Chief Justice of Northern Ireland”;
(c)in the definition of “the President” omit “by the Lord Chief Justice of Northern Ireland”.
72U.K.In rule 2A (functions of the President), in paragraph (2) after “Lord Chief Justice of Northern Ireland” insert “ after consultation with the Lord Chancellor ”.
Mental Health (Northern Ireland) Order 1986 (S.I. 1986/595 (N.I. 4))U.K.
73U.K.The Mental Health (Northern Ireland) Order 1986 is amended as follows.
74(1)Article 83 (procedure of tribunal) is amended as follows.U.K.
(2)In paragraph (1) after “Lord Chancellor may” insert “ , after consultation with the Lord Chief Justice, ”.
(3)After paragraph (1) insert—
“(1A)The Lord Chief Justice may nominate any of the following to exercise his functions under paragraph (1)—
(a)the holder of one of the offices listed in Schedule 1 to the Justice (Northern Ireland) Act 2002;
(b)a Lord Justice of Appeal (as defined in section 88 of that Act).”
75(1)Schedule 3 (Mental Health Review Tribunal for Northern Ireland) is amended as follows.U.K.
(2)In paragraph 1—
(a)in sub-paragraph (a) after “suitable” insert “ after consultation with the Lord Chief Justice ”;
(b)In sub-paragraph (b) and (c) omit “after consultation with the Head of the Department”.
(3)After paragraph 1 insert—
“1A(1)The Lord Chief Justice may nominate any of the following to exercise his functions under sub-paragraph 1(a)—
(a)the holder of one of the offices listed in Schedule 1 to the Justice (Northern Ireland) Act 2002;
(b)a Lord Justice of Appeal (as defined in section 88 of that Act).
(2)As part of the selection process for an appointment under paragraph 1(b) or (c) the Northern Ireland Judicial Appointments Commission shall consult the Head of the Department.”
76U.K.In Schedule 6 to the Mental Health (Northern Ireland) Order 1986 (transitional provisions), omit paragraph 19.
Police and Criminal Evidence (Northern Ireland) Order 1989 (S.I. 1989/1341 (N.I. 12))U.K.
77U.K.The Police and Criminal Evidence (Northern Ireland) Order 1989 is amended as follows.
78U.K.In Article 80A (evidence through live links), in paragraph (6) after “Lord Chancellor” insert “ , after consultation with the Lord Chief Justice, ”.
79U.K.In Article 81 (evidence through television links), in paragraph (8) after “Lord Chancellor” insert “ , after consultation with the Lord Chief Justice, ”.
Insolvency (Northern Ireland) Order 1989 (S.I. 1989/2405 (N.I. 19))U.K.
80U.K.The Insolvency (Northern Ireland) Order 1989 is amended as follows.
81U.K.In Article 359 (insolvency rules), after paragraph (1) insert—
“(1A)Rules that affect court procedure may be made under paragraph (1) only with the concurrence of the Lord Chief Justice.
(1B)The Lord Chief Justice may nominate any of the following to exercise his functions under paragraph (1A)—
(a)the holder of one of the offices listed in Schedule 1 to the Justice (Northern Ireland) Act 2002;
(b)a Lord Justice of Appeal (as defined in section 88 of that Act).”
82(1)Article 360 (committee to review insolvency rules) is amended as follows.U.K.
(2)In paragraph (1) for “continue to be a committee appointed by the Lord Chancellor” substitute “ be a committee appointed by the Lord Chief Justice ”.
(3)In paragraph (2)(f) for “Lord Chancellor” substitute “ Lord Chief Justice ”.
(4)After paragraph (2) insert—
“(3)The Lord Chief Justice may nominate any of the following to exercise his functions under this Article—
(a)the holder of one of the offices listed in Schedule 1 to the Justice (Northern Ireland) Act 2002;
(b)a Lord Justice of Appeal (as defined in section 88 of that Act).”
83(1)Article 364 (insolvent partnerships) is amended as follows.U.K.
(2)In paragraph (1) after “concurrence of” insert “ the Lord Chief Justice and ”.
(3)After paragraph (1) insert—
“(1ZA)The Lord Chief Justice of Northern Ireland may nominate any of the following to exercise his functions under paragraph (1)—
(a)the holder of one of the offices listed in Schedule 1 to the Justice (Northern Ireland) Act 2002;
(b)a Lord Justice of Appeal (as defined in section 88 of that Act).”
84(1)Article 365 (insolvent estates of deceased persons) is amended as follows.U.K.
(2)In paragraph (1) after “concurrence of” insert “ the Lord Chief Justice and ”.
(3)After paragraph (1) insert—
“(1ZA)The Lord Chief Justice of Northern Ireland may nominate any of the following to exercise his functions under paragraph (1)—
(a)the holder of one of the offices listed in Schedule 1 to the Justice (Northern Ireland) Act 2002;
(b)a Lord Justice of Appeal (as defined in section 88 of that Act).”
Child Support (Northern Ireland) Order 1991 (S.I. 1991/2628 (N.I. 23))U.K.
85U.K.The Child Support (Northern Ireland) Order 1991 is amended as follows.
86(1)Article 10 (role of the courts with respect to maintenance for children) is amended as follows.U.K.
(2)In paragraph (5), after “Lord Chancellor may” insert “ , with the concurrence of the Lord Chief Justice, ”.
(3)After paragraph (5) insert—
“(5A)The Lord Chief Justice may nominate any of the following to exercise his functions under paragraph (5)—
(a)the holder of one of the offices listed in Schedule 1 to the Justice (Northern Ireland) Act 2002;
(b)a Lord Justice of Appeal (as defined in section 88 of that Act).”
87(1)Article 42 (jurisdiction of courts in certain proceedings under this Order) is amended as follows.U.K.
(2)In paragraphs (1) and (3) after “Lord Chancellor may” insert “ , after consultation with the Lord Chief Justice, ”.
(3)In paragraph (4) after “Lord Chancellor considers appropriate” insert “ , after consultation with the Lord Chief Justice, ”.
(4)After paragraph (4) insert—
“(5)The Lord Chief Justice of Northern Ireland may nominate any of the following to exercise his functions under this Article—
(a)the holder of one of the offices listed in Schedule 1 to the Justice (Northern Ireland) Act 2002;
(b)a Lord Justice of Appeal (as defined in section 88 of that Act).”
Prospective
Registered Homes (Northern Ireland) Order 1992 (S.I. 1992/3204 (N.I. 20))U.K.
88(1)In the Registered Homes (Northern Ireland) Order 1992, Article 30 (constitution of panels for chairmen and members of Social Care Tribunals) is amended as follows.U.K.
(2)In paragraph (3) after “suitable” insert “ after consultation with the Lord Chief Justice ”.
(3)After paragraph (3) insert—
“(3A)The Lord Chief Justice may nominate any of the following to exercise his functions under paragraph (3)—
(a)the holder of one of the offices listed in Schedule 1 to the Justice (Northern Ireland) Act 2002;
(b)a Lord Justice of Appeal (as defined in section 88 of that Act).”
Family Law (Northern Ireland) Order 1993 (S.I. 1993/1575 (N.I. 6))U.K.
89U.K.The Family Law (Northern Ireland) Order 1993 is amended as follows.
90(1)Article 12 (family proceedings rules) is amended as follows.U.K.
(2)In paragraph (1) for the words from “which” to “court” substitute “ which may make rules of court in accordance with Article 12A ”.
(3)In paragraph (3) for “rules of court made under this Article” substitute “ family proceedings rules ”.
(4)In paragraph (4) for “Rules of court made under this Article” substitute “ Family proceedings rules ”.
(5)In paragraph (5)—
(a)after “this Article” insert “ and Article 12A ”;
(b)at the end insert—
““family proceedings rules” means rules of court made under this Article.”
91U.K.After Article 12 insert—
“12AMaking of family proceedings rules
(1)After making family proceedings rules the Committee must submit them to the Lord Chancellor.
(2)The Lord Chancellor may allow or disallow family proceedings rules submitted to him.
(3)Family proceedings rules have effect only if allowed by the Lord Chancellor.
(4)If the Lord Chancellor disallows family proceedings rules, the Lord Chancellor must give the Committee written reasons why he has disallowed them.
(5)Paragraph (6) applies if the Lord Chancellor gives the Committee written notice that he thinks it is expedient for family proceedings rules to include provision that would achieve a purpose specified in the notice.
(6)The Committee must make such family proceedings rules as it considers necessary to achieve the specified purpose.
(7)Those rules must be—
(a)made within a reasonable period after the Lord Chancellor gives notice under paragraph (5);
(b)made in accordance with this Article.”
92(1)In Schedule 2 (Northern Ireland Family Proceedings Rules Committee), paragraph 2 is amended as follows.U.K.
(2)That paragraph becomes sub-paragraph (1) of paragraph 2.
(3)In that sub-paragraph—
(a)in sub-paragraph (c) for “Lord Chancellor after consultation with the Lord Chief Justice” substitute “ Lord Chief Justice ”;
(b)in sub-paragraph (f) for “Lord Chancellor” substitute “ Lord Chief Justice ”.
(4)After that sub-paragraph insert—
“(2)The Lord Chief Justice may nominate any of the following to exercise his functions under this paragraph—
(a)the holder of one of the offices listed in Schedule 1 to the Justice (Northern Ireland) Act 2002;
(b)a Lord Justice of Appeal (as defined in section 88 of that Act).”
Children (Northern Ireland) Order 1995 (S.I. 1995/755 (N.I. 2))U.K.
93U.K.The Children (Northern Ireland) Order 1995 is amended as follows.
94U.K.In Article 4 (reports on child's welfare), in paragraph (2) after “Lord Chancellor may” insert “ , after consultation with the Lord Chief Justice, ”.
95U.K.In Article 60 (representation of child and his interests in certain proceedings), in paragraph (8) for “Lord Chancellor” substitute “ Lord Chief Justice ”.
96U.K.In Article 166 (appeals), in paragraph (14) after “Lord Chancellor may” insert “ , after consultation with the Lord Chief Justice, ”.
97U.K.In Article 169 (evidence given by, or with respect to, children), in paragraph (5) after “Lord Chancellor may” insert “ , with the concurrence of the Lord Chief Justice, ”.
98U.K.In Article 170 (privacy for children involved in certain proceedings), in paragraph (5) after “requires it” insert “ and if the Lord Chief Justice agrees ”.
99U.K.After Article 181 insert—
“181ADelegation of functions by Lord Chief Justice
(1)The Lord Chief Justice of Northern Ireland may nominate any of the following to exercise a delegable function—
(a)the holder of one of the offices listed in Schedule 1 to the Justice (Northern Ireland) Act 2002;
(b)a Lord Justice of Appeal (as defined in section 88 of that Act).
(2)In paragraph (1) “delegable function” means a function under any of these provisions of this Order—
(a)Article 4(2);
(b)Article 166(14);
(c)Article 169(5);
(d)Article 170(5);
(e)in Schedule 1, paragraph 6(2);
(f)in Schedule 7—
(i)paragraph 1(1), (2) and (4);
(ii)paragraph 2(1) and (5);
(iii)paragraph 3;
(iv)paragraph 4(4), (6)(a) and (7).”
100U.K.In paragraph 6 of Schedule 1 (financial provision for children: provisions relating to lump sums), in sub-paragraph (2) after “Lord Chancellor may” insert “ , after consultation with the Lord Chief Justice, ”.
101(1)Schedule 7 (commencement of proceedings) is amended as follows.U.K.
(2)In paragraph 1 (commencement of certain proceedings in particular court), in sub-paragraphs (1), (2) and (4) after “Lord Chancellor may” insert “ , after consultation with the Lord Chief Justice, ”.
(3)In paragraph 2 (transfer of proceedings)—
(a)in sub-paragraph (1) after “Lord Chancellor may” insert “ , after consultation with the Lord Chief Justice, ”;
(b)in sub-paragraph (5) after “Lord Chancellor thinks appropriate” insert “ , after consultation with the Lord Chief Justice, ”.
(4)In paragraph 3 (emergency protection orders), after “Lord Chancellor may” insert “ , after consultation with the Lord Chief Justice, ”.
(5)In paragraph 4 (general)—
(a)in sub-paragraph (4) after “Lord Chancellor may” insert “ , after consultation with the Lord Chief Justice ”;
(b)in sub-paragraph (6)(a) after “Lord Chancellor considers expedient” insert “ , after consultation with the Lord Chief Justice ”;
(c)in sub-paragraph (7) after “Lord Chancellor by order otherwise provides” insert “ , after consultation with the Lord Chief Justice ”.
Education (Northern Ireland) Order 1996 (S.I. 1996/274 (N.I. 1))U.K.
102(1)In the Education (Northern Ireland) Order 1996, Article 22 (constitution of Special Educational Needs Tribunal for Northern Ireland) is amended as follows.U.K.
(2)In paragraph (3)(a) after “suitable” insert “ after consultation with the Lord Chief Justice ”.
(3)After paragraph (3) insert—
“(3A)The Lord Chief Justice may nominate any of the following to exercise his functions under paragraph (3)—
(a)the holder of one of the offices listed in Schedule 1 to the Justice (Northern Ireland) Act 2002;
(b)a Lord Justice of Appeal (as defined in section 88 of that Act).”
Deregulation (Model Appeal Provisions) Order (Northern Ireland) 1997 (S.R. 1997/269U.K.
103(1)The Deregulation (Model Appeal Provisions) Order (Northern Ireland) 1997 is amended as follows.U.K.
(2)In the Schedule, in rule 6 (appointment of tribunal)—
(a)in paragraph (3)(a) omit “but”;
(b)omit paragraph (3)(b).
Northern Ireland Act 1998 (c. 47)U.K.
104U.K.The Northern Ireland Act 1998 is amended as follows.
105U.K.In section 90 (effect of certificates), in subsection (2) for “made by the Lord Chancellor” substitute “ made under section 91 ”.
106(1)Section 91 (the National Security Certificates Tribunal) is amended as follows.U.K.
(2)In subsection (2), after “Lord Chancellor may” insert “ , after consultation with the Lord Chief Justice of Northern Ireland, ”.
(3)After subsection (2) insert—
“(2A)The Lord Chief Justice may nominate any of the following to exercise his functions under subsection (2)—
(a)the holder of one of the offices listed in Schedule 1 to the Justice (Northern Ireland) Act 2002;
(b)a Lord Justice of Appeal (as defined in section 88 of that Act).”
107(1)Section 92 (appeals from the Tribunal) is amended as follows.U.K.
(2)In subsection (3) after “Lord Chancellor may” insert “ , after consultation with the Lord Chief Justice of Northern Ireland, ”.
(3)After subsection (3) insert—
“(3A)The Lord Chief Justice may nominate any of the following to exercise his functions under subsection (3)—
(a)the holder of one of the offices listed in Schedule 1 to the Justice (Northern Ireland) Act 2002;
(b)a Lord Justice of Appeal (as defined in section 88 of that Act).”
108(1)In Schedule 11 (tribunal established under section 91 of the Act), paragraph 5 (times and places of sittings in accordance with directions) is amended as follows.U.K.
(2)That paragraph becomes sub-paragraph (1) of paragraph 5.
(3)In that sub-paragraph, for “Lord Chancellor” substitute “ Lord Chief Justice ”.
(4)After that sub-paragraph insert—
“(2)The Lord Chief Justice may nominate any of the following to exercise his functions under this paragraph—
(a)the holder of one of the offices listed in Schedule 1 to the Justice (Northern Ireland) Act 2002;
(b)a Lord Justice of Appeal (as defined in section 88 of that Act).”
Family Homes and Domestic Violence (Northern Ireland) Order 1998 (S.I. 1998/1071 (N.I. 6))U.K.
109U.K.The Family Homes and Domestic Violence (Northern Ireland) Order 1998 is amended as follows.
110(1)Article 34 (jurisdiction of courts and procedure) is amended as follows.U.K.
(2)In paragraphs (3), (4) and (5) after “Lord Chancellor may” insert “ , after consultation with the Lord Chief Justice, ”.
(3)In paragraph (7) after “Lord Chancellor thinks appropriate” insert “ , after consultation with the Lord Chief Justice, ”.
(4)In paragraph (9) after “Lord Chancellor” insert “ , after consultation with the Lord Chief Justice, ”.
(5)After paragraph (9) insert—
“(9A)The Lord Chief Justice may nominate any of the following to exercise his functions under this Article—
(a)the holder of one of the offices listed in Schedule 1 to the Justice (Northern Ireland) Act 2002;
(b)a Lord Justice of Appeal (as defined in section 88 of that Act).”
111(1)Article 39 (appeals) is amended as follows.U.K.
(2)In paragraph (4) after “Lord Chancellor” in each place insert “ , after consultation with the Lord Chief Justice, ”.
(3)In paragraph (11) after “Lord Chancellor may” insert “ , after consultation with the Lord Chief Justice, ”.
(4)After paragraph (11) insert—
“(11A)The Lord Chief Justice of Northern Ireland may nominate any of the following to exercise his functions under paragraph (4) or (11)—
(a)the holder of one of the offices listed in Schedule 1 to the Justice (Northern Ireland) Act 2002;
(b)a Lord Justice of Appeal (as defined in section 88 of that Act).”
Criminal Justice (Children) (Northern Ireland) Order 1998 (S.I. 1998/1504 (N.I. 9))U.K.
112U.K.In Article 27 of the Criminal Justice (Children) (Northern Ireland) Order 1998 (youth courts), in paragraph (3) for “Lord Chancellor” substitute “ Lord Chief Justice ”.
Social Security (Northern Ireland) Order 1998 (S.I. 1998/1506 (N.I. 10))U.K.
113(1)In the Social Security (Northern Ireland) Order 1998, Article 7 (qualifications for membership of appeal panels) is amended as follows.U.K.
(2)In paragraph (2) for the words from “such” to the end substitute “ persons appointed by the Lord Chancellor ”.
(3)In paragraph (3) at the end insert “ ; and such concurrence may be given only after consultation with the Lord Chief Justice ”.
(4)After paragraph (3) insert—
“(3A)The Lord Chief Justice may nominate any of the following to exercise his functions under paragraph (3)—
(a)the holder of one of the offices listed in Schedule 1 to the Justice (Northern Ireland) Act 2002;
(b)a Lord Justice of Appeal (as defined in section 88 of that Act).”
(3B)As part of the selection process for the appointment of a medical practitioner as a member of the panel, the Northern Ireland Judicial Appointments Commission shall consult the Chief Medical Officer of the Department.”
Criminal Evidence (Northern Ireland) Order 1999 (S.I. 1999/2789 (N.I. 8))U.K.
114U.K.In Article 12 of the Criminal Evidence (Northern Ireland) Order 1999 (evidence by live link), in paragraph (5) after “Lord Chancellor” insert “ , after consultation with the Lord Chief Justice, ”.
Justice (Northern Ireland) Act 2002 (c. 26)U.K.
115(1)The Justice (Northern Ireland) Act 2002 is amended as follows.U.K.
(2)Where the amendment to section 8(7), 24(5) or 43(6) of that Act made by this Schedule comes into force before section 23 of this Act, the reference in that section (as amended by this Schedule) to the President of the Supreme Court has effect, until section 23 comes into force, as a reference to the senior Lord of Appeal in Ordinary.
Prospective
116U.K.. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .
117(1)Section 9 (appointment of lay magistrates) is amended as follows.U.K.
(2)In paragraph (a) of subsection (2) for the words from “approved by” to the end of the paragraph substitute “ approved by the Lord Chief Justice after consultation with the Lord Chancellor, or ”.
(3)In subsection (3) for the words from “such longer period” to the end substitute “ such longer period as the Lord Chief Justice may, after consulting the Lord Chancellor, allow. ”
(4)In subsection (4) after “may” insert “ , after consultation with the Lord Chief Justice, ”.
(5)In subsection (5) after “unless” insert “ , after consultation with the Lord Chief Justice, ”.
118U.K.In section 10 (transfer of functions of justices of the peace), in subsection (4) after “Lord Chancellor may” insert “ , after consultation with the Lord Chief Justice, ”.
119U.K.In section 12 (role of the Lord Chief Justice), omit subsections (2) and (3).
Yn ddilys o 12/04/2010
120(1)In section 24 (removal of Attorney General), in subsection (5) after “Lord Chancellor” insert “after consultation with all of the following— U.K.
(a)the President of the Supreme Court;
(b)the Lord Chief Justice of England and Wales;
(c)the Lord President of the Court of Session;
(d)the Lord Chief Justice of Northern Ireland”.
Yn ddilys o 12/04/2010
121U.K.In section 43 (appointment and removal of Director of Public Prosecutions), in subsection (6) after “Lord Chancellor” insert “after consultation with all of the following—
(a)the President of the Supreme Court;
(b)the Lord Chief Justice of England and Wales;
(c)the Lord President of the Court of Session;
(d)the Lord Chief Justice of Northern Ireland”.
Yn ddilys o 31/08/2005
122(1)Schedule 1 (listed judicial offices) is amended as follows.U.K.
(2)After the entry “Member of the legal panel of persons available to act as chairmen of Social Care Tribunals in Northern Ireland” insert—
(3)For the entry “Member of the legal panel of persons available to act as chairmen of Social Care Tribunals in Northern Ireland” and the entry inserted by sub-paragraph (2) above substitute—
(4)Before the entry “Member of the panel of chairmen of the Fair Employment Tribunal” insert—
(5)At the end of the Schedule insert—
“Member of the panel of persons who may serve as chairmen of a tribunal established for the purposes of the Deregulation (Model Appeal Provisions) Order (Northern Ireland) 1997 (S.R. 1997/269)
Chairman of a Tribunal appointed under paragraph 1(1)(a) of Schedule 3 to the Misuse of Drugs Act 1971 in its application to Northern Ireland
Member of a Tribunal appointed under paragraph 2(1) of the Schedule to the Pensions Appeal Tribunals Act 1943 in its application to Northern Ireland
President or Deputy President of Pensions Appeal Tribunals appointed under paragraph 2B of the Schedule to the Pensions Appeal Tribunals Act 1943 in its application to Northern Ireland
Chairman of the Plant Varieties and Seeds Tribunal for the purpose of proceedings brought before it in Northern Ireland
Member of the panel of persons to act as chairmen of Reinstatement Committees sitting in Northern Ireland (appointed under paragraph 2(1)(a) of Schedule 2 to the Reserve Forces (Safeguard of Employment) Act 1985)
Member of the panel of persons appointed under section 6(1) of the Tribunals and Inquiries Act 1992 to act as chairmen of tribunals that sit in Northern Ireland
Member of the panel of chairmen of VAT tribunals for Northern Ireland
General Commissioner for a division in Northern Ireland (appointed under section 2 of the Taxes Management Act 1970)”.
Prospective
123U.K.. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .
124(1)Schedule 4 (functions of justices of the peace) is amended as follows.U.K.
(2)In paragraph 4 (amendment of Schedule by order), after “Lord Chancellor may” insert “ , after consultation with the Lord Chief Justice, ”.
(3)In paragraph 5 (consequential amendments by order) after “Lord Chancellor may” insert “ , after consultation with the Lord Chief Justice, ”.
(4)After paragraph 5 insert—
“5AThe Lord Chief Justice may nominate any of the following to exercise his functions under paragraph 4 or 5—
(a)the holder of one of the offices listed in Schedule 1 to the Justice (Northern Ireland) Act 2002 (c. 26);
(b)a Lord Justice of Appeal (as defined in section 88 of that Act).”
125U.K.Omit Schedule 5 (transfer of functions to Lord Chief Justice).
Yn ddilys o 31/08/2005
126(1)Schedule 6 (office-holders required to take judicial oath) is amended as follows.U.K.
(2)After the entry “Member of the legal panel of persons available to act as chairmen of Social Care Tribunals in Northern Ireland” insert— “ Chairman of an Appeal Tribunal for the purposes of the Adoption (Northern Ireland) Order 1987 (S.I. 1987/2203 (N.I. 22)) ”.
(3)For the entry “Member of the legal panel of persons available to act as chairmen of Social Care Tribunals in Northern Ireland” and the entry inserted by sub-paragraph (2) above substitute— “ Member of the panel of persons who may serve as chairmen of the Care Tribunal established by Article 44 of the Health and Personal Social Services (Quality, Improvements and Regulation) (Northern Ireland) Order 2003 (S.I. 2003/431 (N.I. 9)) ”.
(4)Before the entry “Member of the panel of chairmen of the Fair Employment Tribunal” insert— “ Member of the panel of chairmen of the Industrial Tribunals ”.
(5)At the end of the Schedule insert— “ Member of the panel of persons who may serve as chairmen of a tribunal established for the purposes of the Deregulation (Model Appeal Provisions) Order (Northern Ireland) 1997 (S.R. 1997/269). Chairman of a Tribunal appointed under paragraph 1(1)(a) of Schedule 3 to the Misuse of Drugs Act 1971 in its application to Northern Ireland Member of a Tribunal appointed under paragraph 2(1) of the Schedule to the Pensions Appeal Tribunals Act 1943 in its application to Northern Ireland President or Deputy President of Pensions Appeal Tribunals appointed under paragraph 2B of the Schedule to the Pensions Appeal Tribunals Act 1943 in its application to Northern Ireland Chairman of the Plant Varieties and Seeds Tribunal for the purpose of proceedings brought before it in Northern Ireland Member of the panel of persons to act as chairmen of Reinstatement Committees sitting in Northern Ireland (appointed under paragraph 2(1)(a) of Schedule 2 to the Reserve Forces (Safeguard of Employment) Act 1985) Member of the panel of persons appointed under section 6(1) of the Tribunals and Inquiries Act 1992 to act as chairmen of tribunals that sit in Northern Ireland Member of the panel of chairmen of VAT tribunals for Northern Ireland General Commissioner for a division in Northern Ireland (appointed under section 2 of the Taxes Management Act 1970) ”.
Yn ddilys o 12/04/2010
127U.K.In Schedule 12 (minor and consequential amendments), after paragraph 81 insert—
“Constitutional Reform Act 2005
82Omit sections 133 to 136 of the Constitutional Reform Act 2005 (judicial removals: Northern Ireland).”
128(1)Schedule 13 (repeals and revocations) is amended as follows.U.K.
(2)Omit—
(a)the entry relating to the County Courts (Northern Ireland) Order 1980 (1980/397 (N.I. 3));
(b)the entry relating to Article 168 of the Magistrates' Courts (Northern Ireland) Order 1981.
(3)After the entries relating to the Justice (Northern Ireland) Act 2002 insert—
“Constitutional Reform Act 2005 | Sections 133 to 136.” |
Health and Personal Social Services (Quality, Improvement and Regulation) (Northern Ireland) Order 2003 (S.I. 2003/431 (N.I. 9))U.K.
129(1)In Schedule 2 to the Health and Personal Social Services (Quality, Improvements and Regulation) (Northern Ireland) Order 2003 (the Care Tribunal), paragraph (1) (composition of Care Tribunal) is amended as follows.U.K.
(2)For sub-paragraph (2)(a) substitute—
“(a)a chairman nominated from the chairmen's panel by the Lord Chief Justice after consultation with the First Minister and deputy First Minister; and”.
(3)After sub-paragraph (2) insert—
“(2A)The Lord Chief Justice may nominate any of the following to exercise his functions under this paragraph—
(a)the holder of one of the offices listed in Schedule 1 to the Justice (Northern Ireland) Act 2002;
(b)a Lord Justice of Appeal (as defined in section 88 of that Act).”
(4)In paragraph (3) (tenure of office), omit sub-paragraph (3).
Prospective
Industrial Tribunals (Constitution and Rules of Procedure) Regulations (Northern Ireland) 2004 (S.R. 2004/165)U.K.
130(1)Regulation 5 of the Industrial Tribunals (Constitution and Rules of Procedure) Regulations (Northern Ireland) 2004 (panels of chairmen and members of tribunals) is amended as follows.U.K.
(2)In paragraph (1)(a), for “the Department” substitute “ the Lord Chancellor ”.
(3)In paragraph (2), for “to the Department” substitute “ to the Lord Chancellor, in the case of a member of the panel of chairmen, or to the Department, in any other case, ”.
Yn ddilys o 03/04/2006
Part 2 U.K.Amendments relating to enactments repealed or amended otherwise than by this Act
IntroductionU.K.
131(1)This Part of this Schedule contains amendments of or relating to enactments that have already been amended or repealed by provisions of other Acts.U.K.
(2)In each case the amending or repealing provision is specified, in relation to the enactment referred to, as the “original amending provision”.
(3)An amendment contained in any provision of this Part of this Schedule has effect only until the original amending provision comes fully into force in relation to the enactment referred to in that provision of this Part of this Schedule.
Prospective
Children and Young Persons Act (Northern Ireland) 1968 (c. 34 (N.I.))U.K.
132(1)Schedule 2 to the Children and Young Persons Act (Northern Ireland) 1968 (constitution of juvenile courts) is amended as follows.U.K.
(2)In paragraph 1 (juvenile court panels)—
(a)in sub-paragraph (3) for “Lord Chancellor” in each place substitute “ Lord Chief Justice ”;
(b)after sub-paragraph (3) insert—
“(3A)The Lord Chief Justice may approve a course of training, or allow a longer period for completion of a course, only after consultation with the Lord Chancellor.”
(3)In relation to the enactment referred to in this paragraph, the original amending provision is section 86 of, and Schedule 13 to, the Justice (Northern Ireland) Act 2002 (c. 26).
Administration of Estates (Northern Ireland) Order 1979 (S.I. 1979/1575 (N.I. 14))U.K.
133(1)Article 27 of the Administration of Estates (Northern Ireland) Order 1979 (depositories of wills of living persons) is amended as follows.U.K.
(2)That Article becomes paragraph (1) of Article 27.
(3)In that paragraph, for “the directions of the Lord Chancellor” substitute “ directions given by the Lord Chief Justice with the concurrence of the Lord Chancellor ”.
(4)After that paragraph insert—
“(2)The Lord Chief Justice may nominate any of the following to exercise his functions under this Article—
(a)the holder of one of the offices listed in Schedule 1 to the Justice (Northern Ireland) Act 2002;
(b)a Lord Justice of Appeal (as defined in section 88 of that Act).”
(5)In relation to the enactment referred to in this paragraph, the original amending provision is section 75 of, and Part 2 of Schedule 9 to, the Administration of Justice Act 1982 (c. 53).
County Courts (Northern Ireland) Order 1980 (S.I. 1980/397 (N.I. 14))U.K.
134(1)Article 46 of the County Courts (Northern Ireland) Order 1980 (county court rules committee) is amended as follows.U.K.
(2)In paragraph (1) for “Lord Chancellor” substitute “ Lord Chief Justice ”.
(3)After paragraph (1) insert—
“(1A)The Lord Chief Justice must consult the Lord Chancellor before making an appointment under paragraph (1)(b), (c), (e) or (f).”
(4)In relation to the enactment referred to in this paragraph, the original amending provision is section 73(2) of the Justice (Northern Ireland) Act 2002 (c. 26).
Yn ddilys o 01/10/2009
Section 40
SCHEDULE 9U.K.Amendments relating to jurisdiction of the Supreme Court
Part 1 U.K.Jurisdiction transferred from the House of Lords
British Law Ascertainment Act 1859 (c. 63)U.K.
1U.K.In the British Law Ascertainment Act 1859—
(a)in the sidenote to section 4 (Her Majesty in Council or House of Lords on appeal may adopt or reject opinion) for “House of Lords” substitute “ Supreme Court ”;
(b)in that section, for “the House of Lords” and “that House” in each place substitute “ the Supreme Court ”.
Nautical Assessors (Scotland) Act 1894 (c. 40)U.K.
2U.K.In section 6 of the Nautical Assessors (Scotland) Act 1894 (calling in nautical assessors to assist) —
(a)in the sidenote, for “House of Lords” substitute “ Supreme Court ”;
(b)for “House of Lords” in the first place substitute “ Supreme Court ”; and
(c)for “Orders made by the House of Lords” substitute “ Supreme Court Rules ”.
Administration of Justice (Appeals) Act 1934 (c. 40)U.K.
3U.K.In the Administration of Justice (Appeals) Act 1934, omit section 1 (restrictions on appeal from Court of Appeal).
National Health Service (Amendment) Act 1949 (c. 93)U.K.
4U.K.In the National Health Service (Amendment) Act 1949, in section 9 (application of Part 1 to Scotland) in the substituted section 7(9) of the Act, as inserted by subsection (4), for “House of Lords” in each place substitute “ Supreme Court ”.
Miners' Welfare Act 1952 (c. 23)U.K.
5U.K.In the Miners' Welfare Act 1952, in section 17 (application to Scotland) in subsection (3) for “House of Lords” substitute “ Supreme Court ”.
Army Act 1955 (c. 18)U.K.
6U.K.In the Army Act 1955, in section 113C (review of sentences by Courts-Martial Appeal Court)—
(a)in subsection (4)—
(i)for “House of Lords for their opinion” substitute “ Supreme Court for its opinion ”;
(ii)for “the House shall consider the point and give their opinion” substitute “ the Supreme Court shall consider the point and give its opinion ”;
(iii)for the words from “deal with it themselves” to the end of the subsection substitute “ itself deal with the case. ”;
(b)in subsection (5) for “the House of Lords” in each place and “that House” substitute “ the Supreme Court ”;
(c)in subsections (6) and (7) for “House of Lords” in each place substitute “ Supreme Court ”.
Air Force Act 1955 (c. 19)U.K.
7U.K.In the Air Force Act 1955, in section 113C (review of sentences by Courts-Martial Appeal Court)—
(a)in subsection (4)—
(i)for “House of Lords for their opinion” substitute “ Supreme Court for its opinion ”;
(ii)for “the House shall consider the point and give their opinion” substitute “ the Supreme Court shall consider the point and give its opinion ”;
(iii)for the words from “deal with it themselves” to the end of the subsection substitute “ itself deal with the case. ”;
(b)in subsection (5) for “the House of Lords” in each place and “that House” substitute “ the Supreme Court ”;
(c)in subsections (6) and (7) for “House of Lords” in each place substitute “ Supreme Court ”.
Administration of Justice Act 1956 (c. 46)U.K.
8U.K.In the Administration of Justice Act 1956, in Schedule 1 (provisions applicable to Northern Ireland) in paragraph 4A for “House of Lords” substitute “ Supreme Court ”.
Geneva Conventions Act 1957 (c. 52)U.K.
9U.K.In the Geneva Conventions Act 1957, in section 4 (appeals by protected persons) in subsection (1A) for “House of Lords” substitute “ Supreme Court ”.
Naval Discipline Act 1957 (c. 53)U.K.
10U.K.In the Naval Discipline Act 1957, in section 71AC (review of sentences by Courts-Martial Appeal Court)—
(a)in subsection (4)—
(i)for “House of Lords for their opinion” substitute “ Supreme Court for its opinion ”;
(ii)for “the House shall consider the point and give their opinion” substitute “ the Supreme Court shall consider the point and give its opinion ”;
(iii)for the words from “deal with it themselves” to the end of the subsection substitute “ itself deal with the case. ”;
(b)in subsection (5) for “the House of Lords” in each place and “that House” substitute “ the Supreme Court ”;
(c)in subsections (6) and (7) for “House of Lords” in each place substitute “ Supreme Court ”.
Agricultural Marketing Act 1958 (c. 47)U.K.
11U.K.In the Agricultural Marketing Act 1958, in section 12(2) (enforcement of decision of disciplinary committee and power to state case: Scotland), in paragraph (a) for “House of Lords” in each place substitute “ Supreme Court ”.
Caravan Sites and Control of Development Act 1960 (c. 62)U.K.
12U.K.In the Caravan Sites and Control of Development Act 1960, in section 32 (application of Part 1 to Scotland) in subsection (2) for “House of Lords” in each place substitute “ Supreme Court ”.
Administration of Justice Act 1960 (c. 65)U.K.
13(1)The Administration of Justice Act 1960 is amended as follows.U.K.
(2)In section 1 (right of appeal to House of Lords in criminal cases)—
(a)in subsection (1) for “House of Lords” substitute “ Supreme Court ”;
(b)in subsection (2) for “the House of Lords” and “that House” in each place substitute “ the Supreme Court ”;
(c)omit subsection (3);
(d)in subsections (4) and (5) for “House of Lords” substitute “ Supreme Court ”.
(3)In section 2 (application for leave to appeal)—
(a)for “House of Lords” in each place substitute “ Supreme Court ”;
(b)for “that House or that court” substitute “ the Supreme Court or the court below ”.
(4)In section 4 (admission of appellant to bail) in subsection (2) for “the House of Lords” and “that House” substitute “ the Supreme Court ”.
(5)In sections 5(5) and 6(3) (power to order detention or admission to bail of defendant, and computation of sentence where bail granted) for “House of Lords” substitute “ Supreme Court ”.
(6)In section 9 (procedure) in subsection (3) for “the House of Lords” and “that House” substitute “ the Supreme Court ”.
(7)In section 13 (appeal in cases of contempt of court)—
(a)in subsection (2)(c) for “House of Lords” substitute “ Supreme Court ”;
(b)in subsection (4) for “the House of Lords” and “that House” substitute “ the Supreme Court ”.
Backing of Warrants (Republic of Ireland) Act 1965 (c. 45)U.K.
14U.K.In section 2A of the Backing of Warrants (Republic of Ireland) Act 1965 (statement of case by court) for “House of Lords” in each place substitute “ Supreme Court ”.
Commonwealth Secretariat Act 1966 (c. 10)U.K.
15U.K.In the Commonwealth Secretariat Act 1966, in section 1 (the Commonwealth Secretariat, its privileges and immunities) in subsection (4)(a) for “House of Lords” in each place substitute “ Supreme Court ”.
Criminal Appeal Act 1968 (c. 19)U.K.
16(1)The Criminal Appeal Act 1968 is amended as follows.U.K.
(2)In section 30 (restitution of property) in subsection (3) for “House of Lords” substitute “ Supreme Court ”.
(3)In section 33 (right of appeal to House of Lords)—
(a)in the sidenote and subsection (1) for “House of Lords” substitute “ Supreme Court ”;
(b)in subsection (2) for “the House of Lords” and “that House” substitute in each place “ the Supreme Court ”.
(4)In section 34 (application for leave to appeal)—
(a)for “House of Lords” in each place substitute “ Supreme Court ”;
(b)in subsection (1) for “decision of the Court” substitute “ decision of the Court of Appeal ”;
(c)in subsection (2) for “that House or the Court” substitute “ the Supreme Court or the Court of Appeal ”.
(5)In section 35 (hearing and disposal of appeal)—
(a)omit subsections (1) and (2);
(b)in subsection (3) for “House of Lords” substitute “ Supreme Court ”.
(6)In sections 36 and 37 (bail on appeal by defendant, and detention of defendant on appeal by the Crown) for “House of Lords” in each place substitute “ Supreme Court ”.
(7)In section 38 (presence of defendant at hearing) for “House of Lords” and “House” in each place substitute “ Supreme Court ”.
(8)In section 43 (effect of appeal on sentence) for “the House of Lords” and “that House” substitute “ the Supreme Court ”.
(9)In Schedule 4 (procedural and other modifications for capital cases)—
(a)in the italic heading preceding paragraph 3 for “House of Lords” substitute “ Supreme Court ”;
(b)in paragraphs 3 and 4 for “the House of Lords” and “the House” in each place substitute “ the Supreme Court ”.
Courts-Martial (Appeals) Act 1968 (c. 20)U.K.
17(1)The Courts-Martial (Appeals) Act 1968 is amended as follows.U.K.
(2)In section 5 (constitution of court for particular sittings) in subsection (3)(b) for “House of Lords” substitute “ Supreme Court ”.
(3)In sections 39 and 40 (right of appeal, and application for leave to appeal)—
(a)for “the House of Lords” and “that House” in each place substitute “ the Supreme Court ”;
(b)for “the Court” in each place substitute “ the Appeal Court ”.
(4)In section 41 (hearing and disposal of appeal)—
(a)omit subsections (1) and (2);
(b)in subsection (3) for “House of Lords” substitute “ Supreme Court ”.
(5)In sections 42 and 43 (bail, and detention of accused) for “House of Lords” in each place substitute “ Supreme Court ”, and in section 42 for “the Court” substitute “ the Appeal Court ”.
(6)In section 44 (presence of accused at hearing)—
(a)for “the House of Lords” in the first place substitute “ the Supreme Court ”;
(b)for “an order of the House of Lords authorises” substitute “ Supreme Court Rules authorise ”;
(c)for “that House” substitute “ the Supreme Court ”.
(7)In section 45 (effect of repeal on sentence) in subsection (1) for “House of Lords” in each place substitute “ Supreme Court ”.
(8)In section 46 (restitution of property) for “the House of Lords” and “the House” in each place substitute “ the Supreme Court ”.
(9)In section 47 (costs) for “the House of Lords” and “that House” in each place substitute “ the Supreme Court ”, and for “the Court or the House” substitute “ the Appeal Court or the Supreme Court ”.
(10)In sections 50 and 57 (duties of registrar with respect to appeals etc, and interpretation) for “House of Lords” substitute “ Supreme Court ”.
Domestic and Appellate Proceedings (Restriction of Publicity) Act 1968 (c. 63)U.K.
18U.K.In the Domestic and Appellate Proceedings (Restriction of Publicity) Act 1968, in section 4 (provisions relating to Northern Ireland), in subsection (2) for “House of Lords” substitute “ Supreme Court ”.
Foreign Compensation Act 1969 (c. 20)U.K.
19U.K.In the Foreign Compensation Act 1969 in section 3 (determinations of the Foreign Compensation Commission and appeals against such determinations) for subsection (8) substitute—
“(8)No appeal shall lie to the Supreme Court from a decision of the Court of Appeal on an appeal under this section.”
Administration of Justice Act 1969 (c. 58)U.K.
20(1)The Administration of Justice Act 1969 is amended as follows.U.K.
(2)Part 2 is renamed “Appeal from High Court to Supreme Court”.
(3)In section 12 (grant of certificate by trial judge) for “House of Lords” in each place substitute “ Supreme Court ”.
(4)In section 13 (leave to appeal to House of Lords)—
(a)in the sidenote and subsection (1) for “House of Lords” in each place substitute “ Supreme Court ”.
(b)In subsection (2) for “House of Lords” and “House” in each place substitute “ Supreme Court ”;
(c)omit subsection (4).
(5)Omit section 14 (appeal where leave granted).
(6)In section 15 (cases excluded from s 12) in subsection (2)(b) for “House of Lords” substitute “ Supreme Court ”.
Taxes Management Act 1970 (c. 9)U.K.
21(1)The Taxes Management Act 1970 is amended as follows.U.K.
(2)In section 56 (statement of case for the opinion of the High Court)—
(a)in subsection (8) for “House of Lords” in the first place substitute “ Supreme Court ”;
(b)for subsection (8)(a) substitute—
“(a)an appeal to the Supreme Court under this subsection lies only with the permission of the Court of Appeal or the Supreme Court, and”;
(c)in subsection (8)(b) and in subsection (10) for “House of Lords” in each place substitute “ Supreme Court ”.
(3)In section 56A (appeals from the Special Commissioners)—
(a)in subsections (5) and (6) for “House of Lords” in each place substitute “ Supreme Court ”;
(b)for subsection (7) substitute—
“(7)An appeal to the Supreme Court under subsection (6) lies only with the permission of the Court of Appeal or the Supreme Court.”;
(c)in subsection (10) for “House of Lords” substitute “ Supreme Court ”.
(4)In section 58 (proceedings in tax cases in Northern Ireland) in subsection (2C) for “House of Lords” substitute “ Supreme Court ”.
Administration of Justice Act 1970 (c. 31)U.K.
22U.K.In the Administration of Justice Act 1970, in Schedule 9 (enforcement of orders for costs, compensation, etc) in paragraphs 6(c) and 16A for “House of Lords” in each place substitute “ Supreme Court ”.
Criminal Justice Act 1972 (c. 71)U.K.
23U.K.In the Criminal Justice Act 1972, in section 36 (reference to Court of Appeal of point of law following acquittal on indictment)—
(a)in subsection (3) for “the House of Lords” and “that House” in each place substitute “ Supreme Court ”, and for “court that” substitute “ Court of Appeal that ”;
(b)in subsection (4)—
(i)for “the House of Lords” substitute “ the Supreme Court ”;
(ii)for the words from “the House shall consider the point” to the end of the subsection, substitute “ the Supreme Court shall consider the point and give its opinion on it accordingly. ”;
(c)in subsection (5) for “House of Lords” substitute “Supreme Court”, and for “the court or the House” substitute “ the Court of Appeal or the Supreme Court ”.
Prosecution of Offences (Northern Ireland) Order 1972 (S.I. 1972/538 (N.I. 1))U.K.
24U.K.In the Prosecution of Offences (Northern Ireland) Order 1972, in Article 5 (functions of the Director), in paragraph (1)(f) for “House of Lords” substitute “ Supreme Court ”.
Administration of Justice Act 1973 (c. 15)U.K.
25U.K.In the Administration of Justice Act 1973, in section 18 (payment of interpreters in criminal cases) in subsection (2) for “the House of Lords” and “that House” in each place substitute “ the Supreme Court ”, and for “the court” substitute “ the High Court ”.
Litigants in Person (Costs and Expenses) Act 1975 (c. 47)U.K.
26U.K.In the Litigants in Person (Costs and Expenses) Act 1975, in section 1 (costs or expenses recoverable) in subsection (1)(a) and in subsection (2)(a) for “House of Lords” substitute “ Supreme Court ”.
Industry Act 1975 (c. 68)U.K.
27U.K.In the Industry Act 1975, in Schedule 3 (arbitration) in paragraph 23(2) for “House of Lords” in each place substitute “ Supreme Court ”.
Race Relations Act 1976 (c. 74)U.K.
28U.K.In the Race Relations Act 1976, in section 57A (claims under section 19B in immigration cases) in subsection (5) at the definition of “immigration appellate body” for “House of Lords” substitute “ Supreme Court ”.
Aircraft and Shipbuilding Industries Act 1977 (c. 3)U.K.
29U.K.In the Aircraft and Shipbuilding Industries Act 1977, in Schedule 7 (procedure etc of arbitration tribunal) in paragraph 9(2) for “House of Lords” in each place substitute “ Supreme Court ”.
Judicature (Northern Ireland) Act 1978 (c. 23)U.K.
30(1)The Judicature (Northern Ireland) Act 1978 is amended as follows.U.K.
(2)Part 3 is renamed “The Court of Appeal and the Supreme Court”.
(3)In section 35 (appeals to Court of Appeal from High Court) in subsection (5) for “House of Lords” substitute “ Supreme Court ”.
(4)In section 41 (appeals to the House of Lords in other criminal matters)—
(a)in the sidenote and in subsection (1) for “House of Lords” substitute “ Supreme Court ”;
(b)in subsection (2) for “the House of Lords” in each place and “that House” substitute “ the Supreme Court ”;
(c)omit subsection (3);
(d)in subsections (4) and (6) for “House of Lords” substitute “ Supreme Court ”.
(5)In section 42 (appeals to the House of Lords in civil cases)—
(a)in the sidenote and in subsections (1) and (2) for “House of Lords” substitute “ Supreme Court ”;
(b)omit subsections (3), (4) and (5).
(6)In section 43 (appeals to House of Lords from High Court) and in the sidenote for that section, for “House of Lords” in each place substitute “ Supreme Court ”.
(7)In section 44 (appeal in cases of contempt of court)—
(a)in subsection (2)(b) for “House of Lords” substitute “ Supreme Court ”;
(b)in subsection (4) for “the House of Lords” and for “that House” substitute “ the Supreme Court ”.
(8)In Schedule 1 (appeals to House of Lords in certain criminal matters)—
(a)in the title to the Schedule, for “House of Lords” substitute “ Supreme Court ”;
(b)in paragraphs 1 and 3 to 5 for “the House of Lords” and “that House” in each place substitute “the Supreme Court”, and in paragraph 1(2) for “that court” substitute “ the court below ”;
(c)in paragraph 6—
(i)for “an order of the House of Lords” substitute “ Supreme Court Rules ”;
(ii)for “that House” substitute “ the Supreme Court ”.
Estate Agents Act 1979 (c. 38)U.K.
Prospective
31In the Estate Agents Act 1979, in section 7 (appeals) in subsection (6) for “House of Lords” in each place substitute “ Supreme Court ”.
Solicitors (Scotland) Act 1980 (c. 46)U.K.
32(1)The Solicitors (Scotland) Act 1980 is amended as follows.U.K.
(2)In section 20(2)(a) (duty of Council of Law Society of Scotland to supply lists of solicitors holding practising certificates), for sub-paragraph (ii) substitute—
“(ii)the Supreme Court;”.
(3)In section 25A (rights of audience)—
(a)in the sidenote and in each of subsections (1)(a) and (4), for “House of Lords” substitute “ Supreme Court ”; and
(b)in subsection (4) omit the words “and the Judicial Committee of the Privy Council” where they last occur.
Criminal Appeal (Northern Ireland) Act 1980 (c. 47)U.K.
-33(1)The Criminal Appeal (Northern Ireland) Act 1980 is amended as follows.U.K.
(2)In section 31 (right of appeal to House of Lords)—
(a)in subsection (1) for “House of Lords” substitute “ Supreme Court ”;
(b)in subsection (2) for “the House of Lords” and “that House” substitute “ the Supreme Court ”.
(3)In section 32 (application for leave to appeal) for “the House of Lords” and “that House” in each place substitute “ the Supreme Court ”.
(4)In section 33 (hearing and disposal of appeal)—
(a)omit subsections (1) and (2);
(b)in subsection (3) for “House of Lords” substitute “ Supreme Court ”.
(5)In section 34 (further reference to House of Lords)—
(a)in the sidenote, for “House of Lords” substitute “ Supreme Court ”;
(b)in subsection (1) for “the House of Lords” and “that House” substitute “ the Supreme Court ”;
(c)in subsection (2)—
(i)for “the House of Lords” and “the House” in each place substitute “ the Supreme Court ”;
(ii)for “the House's” substitute “ the Supreme Court's ”;
(d)in subsection (3)—
(i)for “the House of Lords” in the first place and “the House” substitute “ the Supreme Court ”;
(ii)for the words from “by such officer” to “House of Lords” substitute “ under Supreme Court Rules ”.
(6)In section 36 (detention of defendant pending appeal by Crown) for “House of Lords” in each place substitute “ Supreme Court ”.
(7)In section 37 (legal aid), in subsection (3) for the words from “by the House of Lords” to “order of that House” substitute “ under Supreme Court Rules ”.
(8)In section 38 (presence of defendant at hearing)—
(a)for “an order of the House of Lords” substitute “ Supreme Court Rules ”;
(b)for “that House” substitute “ the Supreme Court ”.
(9)In section 39 (computation of sentence) in subsection (2) for “House of Lords” substitute “ Supreme Court ”.
(10)In section 40 (restitution of property) for “the House of Lords” and “that House” in each place substitute “ the Supreme Court ”.
(11)In section 41 (costs) for “the House of Lords” and “the House” in each place substitute “ the Supreme Court ”.
(12)In section 42 (taxation of costs)—
(a)in subsection (2)—
(i)for “the House of Lords” in the first place substitute “ the Supreme Court ”;
(ii)for the words from “by such officer” to “House of Lords” substitute “ under Supreme Court Rules ”;
(b)in subsection (3) for “the House of Lords” substitute “ the Supreme Court ”.
(13)In Schedule 3 (procedural and other modifications for capital cases) in paragraph 3 and in the italic heading preceding that paragraph for “House of Lords” substitute “ Supreme Court ”.
Law Reform (Miscellaneous Provisions) (Scotland) Act 1980 (c. 55)U.K.
34U.K.In Schedule 1 to the Law Reform (Miscellaneous Provisions) (Scotland) Act 1980, in Group A of Part 1, for paragraph (a) substitute—
“(a)Justices of the Supreme Court or the President or Deputy President of that Court;”.
Contempt of Court Act 1981 (c. 49)U.K.
35(1)The Contempt of Court Act 1981 is amended as follows.U.K.
(2)In section 16 (enforcement of fines imposed by certain superior courts) in subsection (4) for “House of Lords” substitute “ Supreme Court ”.
(3)In section 19 (interpretation) in the definition of “Scottish proceedings” for “House of Lords” substitute “ Supreme Court ”, and in the definition of “superior court” after “means”, insert “ the Supreme Court ”, and omit the words from “and includes” to the end.
Supreme Court Act 1981 (c. 54)U.K.
36(1)The Supreme Court Act 1981 is amended as follows.U.K.
(2)In section 9 (assistance for transaction of judicial business) in subsection (6A) for “House of Lords” substitute “ Supreme Court ”.
(3)In section 16 (appeals from High Court) in subsection (1) for “House of Lords” substitute “ Supreme Court ”.
(4)In section 28A (proceedings on case stated) in subsection (4) for “House of Lords” substitute “ Supreme Court ”.
(5)In sections 54(5) and 55(4)(b) (court of civil and court of criminal division) for “House of Lords” substitute “ Supreme Court ”.
(6)In section 58 (calling into question of incidental decisions), in subsection (2) for “House of Lords” substitute “ Supreme Court ”.
Wildlife and Countryside Act 1981 (c. 69)U.K.
37U.K.In the Wildlife and Countryside Act 1981, in section 31 (restoration) in subsection (2) for “the House of Lords”, “that House” and “the House” in each case substitute “ the Supreme Court ”.
Legal Aid, Advice and Assistance (Northern Ireland) Order 1981 (S.I. 1981/228 (N.I. 8))U.K.
38U.K.In the Legal Aid, Advice and Assistance (Northern Ireland) Order 1981, in paragraph 1(a) of Part I of Schedule 1 (proceedings for which legal aid may be given) for “House of Lords” substitute “ Supreme Court ”.
Civil Jurisdiction and Judgments Act 1982 (c. 27)U.K.
39U.K.In the Civil Jurisdiction and Judgments Act 1982, in section 6 (appeals under the Lugano Convention)—
(a)in subsection (1)(a) for “House of Lords” in each place substitute “ Supreme Court ”;
(b)in subsection (2) for “the House of Lords” and “that House” substitute “ the Supreme Court ”.
Mental Health (Scotland) Act 1984 (c. 36)U.K.
40U.K.In section 66A(4) of the Mental Health (Scotland) Act 1984 (appeal to Court of Session against certain decisions of sheriff), for “House of Lords” in each place substitute “ Supreme Court ”.
Prosecution of Offences Act 1985 (c. 23)U.K.
41(1)The Prosecution of Offences Act 1985 is amended as follows.U.K.
(2)In section 3 (functions of the Director), in subsection (2)(f)(ii) for “House of Lords” substitute “ Supreme Court ”.
(3)In sections 16(5), 17(1)(b), and 18(2)(b) (payment of prosecution costs, defendant's costs orders, and award of costs on dismissal of appeal or application) for “House of Lords” in each place substitute “ Supreme Court ”.
(4)In section 20 (regulations) at subsection (8)(b) for “House of Lords” substitute “ Supreme Court ”.
Transport Act 1985 (c. 67)U.K.
Prospective
42(1)The Transport Act 1985 is amended as follows.
(2)In section 9 (appeals against traffic regulation conditions) in subsection (9) for “House of Lords” in each place substitute “ Supreme Court ”.
(3)In Schedule 4 (consultation, powers and proceedings of the Transport Tribunal), in paragraph 14(7) for “House of Lords” substitute “ Supreme Court ”, and for “that Court” substitute “ the Court of Appeal or Court of Session (as the case may be) ”.
Law Reform (Miscellaneous Provisions) (Scotland) Act 1985 (c. 73)U.K.
43U.K.In section 22(1) of the Law Reform (Miscellaneous Provisions) (Scotland) Act 1985 (re-employment of retired judges)—
(a)after paragraph (a) insert—
“(aa)has held office as a Justice of the Supreme Court or as President or Deputy President of that Court and who, at the time of being appointed to the office in question, was eligible for appointment as a judge in the Court of Session;”; and
(b)omit the words “, in either case,”.
Insolvency Act 1986 (c. 45)U.K.
44U.K.In the Insolvency Act 1986, in section 277(3)(b) (petition based on criminal bankruptcy order)—
(a)for “House of Lords” substitute “ Supreme Court ”;
(b)for the words from “section 40(5)” to the end of the section substitute “subsection (4).
(4)For the purposes of subsection (3)(b) an appeal to the Supreme Court shall be treated as pending until any application for leave to appeal is disposed of and, if leave to appeal is granted, until the appeal is disposed of; and for the purposes of this subsection an application for leave to appeal shall be treated as disposed of at the expiration of the time within which it may be made, if it is not made within that time.”
Legal Aid (Scotland) Act 1986 (c. 47)U.K.
45U.K.In the Legal Aid (Scotland) Act 1986, in Part 1 of Schedule 2 (courts in which civil legal aid is available), for “House of Lords” substitute “ Supreme Court ”.
Criminal Justice Act 1987 (c. 38)U.K.
46U.K.In the Criminal Justice Act 1987, in section 11 (restrictions on reporting)—
(a)in subsection (5)(c) for “House of Lords” substitute “ Supreme Court ”;
(b)in subsection (6)—
(i)for “The House of Lords” substitute “ The Supreme Court ”;
(ii)for “that House” substitute “ the Supreme Court ”;
(c)in subsections (7) and (8) for “House of Lords” in each place substitute “ Supreme Court ”.
Income and Corporation Taxes Act 1988 (c. 1)U.K.
47(1)The Income and Corporation Taxes Act 1988 is amended as follows.U.K.
(2)In section 705A (statement of case by tribunal)—
(a)in subsection (8) for “House of Lords” in each place substitute “ Supreme Court ”;
(b)in subsection (9—
(i)for “House of Lords” substitute “ Supreme Court ”;
(ii)for the words from “unless leave has been given” to the end of the subsection substitute “ except with the leave of the Court of Appeal or of the Supreme Court. ”;
(c)in subsection (12) for “House of Lords” substitute “ Supreme Court ”.
(3)In section 705B (proceedings in Northern Ireland), in subsection (2) for “House of Lords” substitute “ Supreme Court ”.
Criminal Justice Act 1988 (c. 33)U.K.
48(1)The Criminal Justice Act 1988 is amended as follows.U.K.
(2)In section 36 (reviews of sentencing)—
(a)in subsection (5)—
(i)for “the House of Lords for their opinion” substitute “ the Supreme Court for its opinion ”;
(ii)for “the House shall consider the point and give their opinion” substitute “ the Supreme Court shall consider the point and give its opinion ”;
(iii)for the words from “deal with it themselves” to the end of the subsection substitute “ itself deal with the case. ”;
(b)in subsection (6) for “the House of Lords” and “that House” in each place substitute “ the Supreme Court ”;
(c)in subsection (7) for “House of Lords” substitute “ Supreme Court ”.
(3)In Schedule 3 (reviews of sentencing_supplementary)—
(a)in paragraphs 4 and 5 for the words “House of Lords” in each place substitute “ Supreme Court ”;
(b)in paragraph 9 for “the House of Lords” and “the House” in each place substitute “ the Supreme Court ”;
(c)in paragraph 10 for “House of Lords” substitute “ Supreme Court ”;
(d)in paragraph 11—
(i)for “the House of Lords” in the first place substitute “ the Supreme Court ”;
(ii)for “the Court or the House” substitute “ the Court of Appeal or the Supreme Court ”;
(iii)for “such officer as may be prescribed by order of the House of Lords” substitute “ under Supreme Court Rules ”.
Court of Session Act 1988 (c. 36)U.K.
49(1)The Court of Session Act 1988 is amended as follows.U.K.
(2)In section 24 (appeals in exchequer cases), in the sidenote and in subsection (1), for “House of Lords” substitute “ Supreme Court ”.
(3)In section 27(5) (special cases), for “House of Lords” substitute “ Supreme Court ”.
(4)In section 32(5) (appeals from sheriff on matters of law only), for “House of Lords” substitute “ Supreme Court ”.
(5)In the heading before section 40, for “House of Lords” substitute “ Supreme Court ”.
(6)In section 40 (appealable interlocutors)—
(a)in subsection (1), for “House of Lords” in each place substitute “ Supreme Court ”;
(b)in subsection (2)—
(i)for “the Court” in each place substitute “ the Inner House ”; and
(ii)for “House of Lords” in each place substitute “ Supreme Court ”; and
(c)in each of subsections (3) and (4), for “House of Lords” substitute “ Supreme Court ”.
(7)In section 41 (interim possession, execution and expenses), in subsections (1) and (2), for “House of Lords” in each place substitute “ Supreme Court ”.
(8)In section 42 (order on payment of interest) and in its sidenote, for “House of Lords” substitute “ Supreme Court ”.
(9)In section 43 (interest and expenses where appeal dismissed for want of prosecution), for “House of Lords” substitute “ Supreme Court ”.
(10)In section 52(3) (appeals relating to estate duty), for “House of Lords” substitute “ Supreme Court ”.
Road Traffic Offenders Act 1988 (c. 53)U.K.
50U.K.In the Road Traffic Offenders Act 1988, in section 40 (power of appellate courts in England and Wales to suspend disqualification) in subsection (3) for “House of Lords” substitute “ Supreme Court ”.
Criminal Justice (Serious Fraud) (Northern Ireland) Order 1988 (S.I. 1988/1846 (N.I. 16))U.K.
51U.K.In the Criminal Justice (Serious Fraud) (Northern Ireland) Order 1988, in Article 10 (restrictions on reporting)—
(a)in paragraph (5)(c), for “House of Lords” substitute “ Supreme Court ”;
(b)in paragraph (6), for “the House of Lords” and “that House” in each place substitute “ the Supreme Court ”;
(c)in paragraphs (7) and (8), for “House of Lords” in each place substitute “ Supreme Court ”.
Extradition Act 1989 (c. 33)U.K.
52U.K.In section 10 of the Extradition Act 1989 (statement of case by court) for “House of Lords” in each place substitute “ Supreme Court ”.
New Roads and Street Works Act 1991 (c. 22)U.K.
53U.K.In the New Roads and Street Works Act 1991, in section 158 (arbitration) in subsections (2) and (3) for “House of Lords” in each place substitute “ Supreme Court ”.
Child Support Act 1991 (c. 48)U.K.
54U.K.In the Child Support Act 1991, in section 28ZC (restrictions on liability in certain cases of error) in subsection (6) in the definition of “the court”, for “House of Lords” substitute “ Supreme Court ”.
Water Resources Act 1991 (c. 57)U.K.
55U.K.In the Water Resources Act 1991, in Schedule 14 (orders transferring main river functions) in paragraph 5(3), and in Schedule 16 (schemes imposing special drainage charges) in paragraph 8(3), for “House of Lords” in each place substitute “ Supreme Court ”.
Land Drainage Act 1991 (c. 59)U.K.
56U.K.In the Land Drainage Act 1991, in Schedule 3 (procedure with respect to certain orders), in paragraph 7(3) for “House of Lords” substitute “ Supreme Court ”.
Child Support (Northern Ireland) Order 1991 (S.I. 1991/2628 (N.I. 23))U.K.
57U.K.In the Child Support (Northern Ireland) Order 1991, in Article 28ZC (restrictions on liability in certain cases of error) in paragraph (6) in the definition of “the court”, for “House of Lords” substitute “ Supreme Court ”.
Social Security Administration (Northern Ireland) Act 1992 (c. 8)U.K.
58U.K.In the Social Security Administration (Northern Ireland) Act 1992, in section 66 (restrictions on entitlement to benefit in certain cases of error) in subsection (4) in the definition of “the court” for “House of Lords” substitute “ Supreme Court ”.
Tribunals and Inquiries Act 1992 (c. 53)U.K.
59U.K.In the Tribunals and Inquiries Act 1992, in section 11 (appeals from certain tribunals) in subsection (7)(d) for “House of Lords” in each place substitute “ Supreme Court ”.
Arbitration Act 1996 (c. 23)U.K.
60U.K.In the Arbitration Act 1996, in Schedule 2 (modifications of Part 1 in relation to judge-arbitrators) in paragraph 2(2) for “House of Lords” substitute “ Supreme Court ”.
Criminal Procedure and Investigations Act 1996 (c. 25)U.K.
61(1)The Criminal Procedure and Investigations Act 1996 is amended as follows.U.K.
(2)In section 36 (appeals to the House of Lords), in sidenote for “House of Lords” substitute “ Supreme Court ”.
(3)In section 37 (restrictions on reporting)—
(a)in subsection (4)(c), for “House of Lords” substitute “ Supreme Court ”;
(b)in subsection (5), for “the House of Lords” and “that House” in each place substitute “ the Supreme Court ”;
(c)in subsections (6) and (7), for “House of Lords” substitute “ Supreme Court ”.
Proceeds of Crime (Northern Ireland) Order 1996 (S.I. 1996/1299 (N.I. 9))U.K.
62U.K.In the Proceeds of Crime (Northern Ireland) Order 1996, in paragraph (6)(b) of Article 13 (application of procedure for enforcing fines) for “House of Lords” substitute “ Supreme Court ”.
Road Traffic Offenders (Northern Ireland) Order 1996 (S.I. 1996/1320 (N.I. 10))U.K.
63U.K.In the Road Traffic Offenders (Northern Ireland) Order 1996, in Article 45 (power of appellate courts in Northern Ireland to suspend disqualification) in paragraph (3) for “House of Lords” substitute “ Supreme Court ”.
Social Security Act 1998 (c. 14)U.K.
64U.K.In the Social Security Act 1998, in section 27 (restrictions on entitlement to benefit in certain cases of error), in subsection (7) in the definition of “the court” for “House of Lords” substitute “ Supreme Court ”.
Competition Act 1998 (c. 41)U.K.
65(1)The Competition Act 1998 is amended as follows.U.K.
(2)In section 38 (the appropriate level of a penalty) for subsection (10)(d) substitute—
“(d)the Supreme Court.”
(3)In section 47A (monetary claims before Tribunal) in subsection (7)(d) for “House of Lords” substitute “ Supreme Court ”.
(4)In section 58A (findings of infringements) in subsection (4)(c) for “House of Lords” substitute “ Supreme Court ”.
(5)In Schedule 13 (transitional provisions and savings) in paragraph 10 for sub-paragraph (6)(e) substitute—
“(e)the Supreme Court.”
Human Rights Act 1998 (c. 42)U.K.
66(1)The Human Rights Act 1998 is amended as follows.U.K.
(2)In section 4 (declaration of incompatibility) in subsection (5) for paragraph (a) substitute—
“(a)the Supreme Court;”.
(3)In section 5 (right of Crown to intervene) in subsections (4) and (5) for “House of Lords” in each case substitute “ Supreme Court ”.
(4)In section 6 (acts of public authorities) omit subsection (4).
Social Security (Northern Ireland) Order 1998 (S.I. 1998/1506 (N.I. 10))U.K.
67U.K.In the Social Security (Northern Ireland) Order 1998, in Article 27 (restriction of entitlement to benefit in certain cases of error), in paragraph (7) in the definition of “the court” for “House of Lords” substitute “ Supreme Court ”.
Access to Justice Act 1999 (c. 22)U.K.
68(1)The Access to Justice Act 1999 is amended as follows.U.K.
(2)In section 57 (assignment of appeals to Court of Appeal) in subsection (1) for “House of Lords” substitute “ Supreme Court ”.
(3)In Schedule 2 (community legal service: excluded services) for paragraph 2(1)(a) substitute—
“(a)the Supreme Court,”.
Powers of Criminal Courts (Sentencing) Act 2000 (c. 6)U.K.
69U.K.In the Powers of Criminal Courts (Sentencing) Act 2000, in sections 132(4) and 139(9), and in subsections (4) and (5) of section 140 (compensation order on restoration of conviction, powers and duties of Crown Court in relation to fines, and enforcement of fines imposed), for “House of Lords” in each case substitute “ Supreme Court ”.
Financial Services and Markets Act 2000 (c. 8)U.K.
70U.K.In the Financial Services and Markets Act 2000 in section 137 (appeal on a point of law)—
(a)in subsection (4) for paragraph (b) substitute—
“(b)the Supreme Court.”;
(b)in subsection (5) for “House of Lords” in each place substitute “ Supreme Court ”.
Terrorism Act 2000 (c. 11)U.K.
71U.K.In the Terrorism Act 2000, in section 6 (further appeal) in subsection (3) for “House of Lords” substitute “ Supreme Court ”.
Child Support, Pensions and Social Security Act 2000 (c. 19)U.K.
72U.K.In the Child Support, Pensions and Social Security Act 2000, in Schedule 7 (housing benefit and council tax benefit: revisions and appeals), for paragraph 18(6)(d) substitute—
“(d)the Supreme Court; or”.
Regulation of Investigatory Powers (Scotland) Act 2000 (asp 11)U.K.
73U.K.In section 2(2) of the Regulation of Investigatory Powers (Scotland) Act 2000 (persons appointed to be Surveillance Commissioners), for “Appellate Jurisdiction Act 1876” substitute “ Constitutional Reform Act 2005 ”.
Child Support, Pensions and Social Security Act (Northern Ireland) 2000 (c. 4 (N.I.))U.K.
74U.K.In the Child Support, Pensions and Social Security Act (Northern Ireland) 2000, in Schedule 7 (housing benefit: revisions and appeals), for paragraph 18(6)(c) substitute—
“(c)the Supreme Court; or”.
International Criminal Court Act 2001 (c. 17)U.K.
75U.K.In the International Criminal Court Act 2001, in section 9 (appeal against refusal of delivery order: England and Wales) for “House of Lords” in each place substitute “ Supreme Court ”.
Armed Forces Act 2001 (c. 19)U.K.
76U.K.In the Armed Forces Act 2001, in section 30 (conditional release from custody) in subsection (2)(b) for “House of Lords” substitute “ Supreme Court ”.
Proceeds of Crime Act 2002 (c. 29)U.K.
77(1)The Proceeds of Crime Act 2002 is amended as follows.U.K.
(2)In section 33 (appeal to House of Lords) in the sidenote and in subsections (1) and (3) to (5) for “House of Lords” in each place substitute “ Supreme Court ”.
(3)In each of sections 44 and 66 (appeal to House of Lords) in the sidenote and subsections (1) and (3) for “House of Lords” in each place substitute “ Supreme Court ”.
(4)In section 85 (proceedings) in subsection (6) for “House of Lords” in each place substitute “ Supreme Court ”.
(5)In section 90 (procedure on appeal to the House of Lords) in sidenote and in subsections (1) and (2) for “House of Lords” in each place substitute “ Supreme Court ”.
(6)In section 183 (appeal to House of Lords) in sidenote and in subsections (1) and (3) to (5) for “House of Lords” in each place substitute “ Supreme Court ”.
(7)In each of sections 193 and 214 (appeal to House of Lords), in the sidenote and in subsections (1) and (3) for “House of Lords” in each place substitute “ Supreme Court ”.
(8)In section 233 (proceedings) in subsection (6) for “House of Lords” in each place substitute “ Supreme Court ”.
(9)In section 238 (procedure on appeal to the House of Lords) and in the sidenote for that section, for “House of Lords” in each place substitute “ Supreme Court ”.
Licensing Act 2003 (c. 17)U.K.
78U.K.In the Licensing Act 2003, in section 130 (powers of appellate court to suspend order under section 129), in subsection (4) for “House of Lords” substitute “ Supreme Court ”.
Crime (International Co-operation) Act 2003 (c. 32)U.K.
79U.K.In the Crime (International Co-operation) Act 2003, in sections 60(4) and 62(4) (suspension of disqualification) for “House of Lords” substitute “ Supreme Court ”.
Courts Act 2003 (c. 39)U.K.
80(1)The Courts Act 2003 is amended as follows.U.K.
(2)In section 88 (extension of time for criminal appeals)—
(a)in the sidenote and in subsections (1) and (4) for “House of Lords” substitute “ Supreme Court ”;
(b)in subsection (5)(b) for “Court” substitute “ Court of Appeal ”;
(c)in subsection (6) in the inserted section 34(1A)(b) of the Criminal Appeal Act 1968 for “Court” substitute “ Court of Appeal ”.
(3)In section 91 (extension of time for appeals from Courts-Martial Appeals Court)—
(a)in subsection (1) for “House of Lords” substitute “ Supreme Court ”;
(b)in subsection (2)(b) for “Court” substitute “ Appeal Court ”;
(c)in subsection (3) in the inserted section 40(1A)(b) of the Courts-Martial (Appeals) Act 1968 for “Court” substitute “ Appeal Court ”.
Extradition Act 2003 (c. 41)U.K.
Prospective
81(1)The Extradition Act 2003 is amended as follows.
(2)In section 32 (appeal to House of Lords) in the sidenote and in subsections (1), (3), (4)(b), (6) and (8)(b) for “House of Lords” substitute “ Supreme Court ”.
(3)In section 114 (appeal to House of Lords) in the sidenote and in subsections (1), (3), (4)(b), (6), and (8)(b) for “House of Lords” substitute “ Supreme Court ”.
(4)In each of the following provisions for “House of Lords” in each place substitute “ Supreme Court ”
(a)section 30 (detention pending conclusion of appeal under section 28);
(b)section 33 (powers on an appeal) and the sidenote to that section;
(c)section 36 (extradition following appeal);
(d)section 43 (withdrawal of warrant while appeal pending) and the sidenote to that section;
(e)section 60 (costs);
(f)section 61 (costs where discharge ordered);
(g)section 107 (detention pending conclusion of appeal under section 105);
(h)section 112 (detention pending conclusion of appeal under section 110);
(i)section 115 (powers on appeal under section 114) and the sidenote to that section;
(j)section 118 (extradition following appeal);
(k)section 125 (withdrawal of request while appeal pending) and the sidenote to that section;
(l)section 133 (costs where extradition ordered);
(m)section 134 (costs where discharge ordered);
(n)section 184 (grant of free legal aid: Northern Ireland);
(o)section 208 (national security);
(p)section 213 (disposal of Part 1 warrant and extradition request);
(q)section 214 (disposal of charge).
(5)In section 185 (free legal aid: supplementary)—
(a)in subsection (4) for “House of Lords” substitute “ Supreme Court ”;
(b)in subsection (5) for the words from “allowed by” to the end substitute “ by the Supreme Court or under Supreme Court Rules. ”
Criminal Justice Act 2003 (c. 44)U.K.
82(1)The Criminal Justice Act 2003 is amended as follows.U.K.
(2)In section 50 (application of Part 7 to Northern Ireland)—
(a)in subsection (8) in the substituted section 47(6) for “House of Lords” substitute “ Supreme Court ”;
(b)in subsection (14), in the new subsection (3B) of section 41 of the Criminal Procedure and Investigations Act 1996 as inserted by subsection (4) of section 48A (reporting restrictions) for “House of Lords” substitute “ Supreme Court ” and for “that House” in each place substitute “ the Supreme Court ”;
(c)in subsection (14), in subsections (5) and (6) of section 48A for “House of Lords” substitute “ Supreme Court ”.
(3)In section 71 (restrictions on reporting)—
(a)in subsection (3) for “House of Lords” substitute “ Supreme Court ”;
(b)in subsection (4) for “House of Lords” substitute “ Supreme Court ” and for “that House” in each place substitute “ the Supreme Court ”;
(c)in subsections (5) and (6) for “House of Lords are” substitute “ Supreme Court is ”.
(4)In section 81 (appeals), in subsection (2) in the inserted section 33(1B) of the Criminal Appeal Act 1968 and the words before it, for “House of Lords” substitute “ Supreme Court ”.
(5)In section 274 (further provision about transferred life prisoners) for “House of Lords” in each place substitute “ Supreme Court ”.
(6)In Schedule 22 (mandatory life sentences) in paragraph 14(2), (4) and (5) for “House of Lords” substitute “ Supreme Court ”.
Mental Health (Care and Treatment) (Scotland) Act 2003 (asp 13)U.K.
83U.K.In section 323(2)(a) of the Mental Health (Care and Treatment) (Scotland) Act 2003 (suspension of decision of Mental Health Tribunal for Scotland until expiry of time allowed to appeal), for “House of Lords” in each place substitute “ Supreme Court ”.
Access to Justice (Northern Ireland) Order 2003 (S.I. 2003/435 (N.I. 10))U.K.
84U.K.In the Access to Justice (Northern Ireland) Order 2003, in Schedule 2 (civil legal services: excluded services) in paragraph 2(a)(i) for “House of Lords” substitute “ Supreme Court ”.
Part 2 U.K.Devolution jurisdiction
Legal Aid (Scotland) Act 1986 (c. 47)U.K.
85(1)The Legal Aid (Scotland) Act 1986 is amended as follows.U.K.
(2)In section 21(1)(c) (scope and nature of criminal legal aid), for “Judicial Committee of the Privy Council” substitute “ Supreme Court ”.
(3)In section 25AB (legal aid in references, appeals or applications for special leave to appeal), in the sidenote and in subsection (1), for “Judicial Committee of the Privy Council” substitute “ Supreme Court ”.
(4)In Part 1 of Schedule 2 (courts in which civil legal aid is available), in paragraph 1 for “Judicial Committee of the Privy Council” substitute “ Supreme Court ”.
Criminal Procedure (Scotland) Act 1995 (c. 46)U.K.
86U.K.In section 288B of the Criminal Procedure (Scotland) Act 1995 (appeal against a determination of a devolution issue)—
(a)in the sidenote and in subsection (1), for “Judicial Committee of the Privy Council” substitute “ Supreme Court ”; and
(b)in subsection (3), for “Judicial Committee” substitute “ Supreme Court ”.
Government of Wales Act 1998 (c. 38)U.K.
Prospective
87The Government of Wales Act 1998 is amended as follows.
Prospective
88In Part 1 of Schedule 8 (devolution issues: preliminary) omit paragraph 1(2)(a) (definition of “the Judicial Committee”).
Prospective
89(1)Part 2 of Schedule 8 (proceedings in England and Wales on devolution issues) is amended as follows.
(2)In paragraph 7 (reference in civil proceedings), in sub-paragraph (2)(a) for “House of Lords” substitute “ Supreme Court ”.
(3)In paragraph 9 (reference in criminal proceedings) for “House of Lords” substitute “ Supreme Court ”.
(4)In the heading before paragraph 10 (references from Court of Appeal to Judicial Committee) for “Judicial Committee” substitute “ Supreme Court ”.
(5)In paragraph 10 for “Judicial Committee” substitute “ Supreme Court ”.
(6)In the heading before paragraph 11 (appeals from superior courts to Judicial Committee) for “Judicial Committee” substitute “ Supreme Court ”.
(7)In paragraph 11—
(a)for “Judicial Committee” in each place substitute “ Supreme Court ”;
(b)for “leave” in the first two places substitute “ permission ”;
(c)for “concerned” substitute “ from which the appeal lies ”;
(d)for “special leave” substitute “ permission ”.
Prospective
90(1)Part 3 of Schedule 8 (proceedings in Scotland on devolution issues) is amended as follows.
(2)In paragraph 15 (references to Inner House of Court of Session) for “House of Lords” substitute “ Supreme Court ”.
(3)In the heading before paragraph 18 (references from superior courts to Judicial Committee) for “Judicial Committee” substitute “ Supreme Court ”.
(4)In paragraph 18 (references from Court of Session) for “Judicial Committee” substitute “ Supreme Court ”.
(5)In paragraph 19 (references from High Court of Justiciary) for “Judicial Committee” substitute “ Supreme Court ”.
(6)In the heading before paragraph 20 (appeals from superior courts to Judicial Committee) for “Judicial Committee” substitute “ Supreme Court ”.
(7)In paragraph 20 (appeal from Inner House of Court of Session) for “Judicial Committee” substitute “ Supreme Court ”.
(8)In paragraph 21 (other appeals from superior courts)—
(a)for “House of Lords” substitute “ Supreme Court apart from this paragraph ”;
(b)for “Judicial Committee” in each place substitute “ Supreme Court ”;
(c)for “leave” in the first two places substitute “ permission ”;
(d)for “concerned” substitute “ from which the appeal lies ”;
(e)for “special leave” substitute “ permission ”.
Prospective
91(1)Part 4 of Schedule 8 (proceedings in Northern Ireland on devolution issues) is amended as follows.
(2)In paragraph 25 (reference to Court of Appeal) for “House of Lords” substitute “ Supreme Court ”.
(3)In the heading before paragraph 27 (references from Court of Appeal to Judicial Committee) for “Judicial Committee” substitute “ Supreme Court ”.
(4)In paragraph 27 for “Judicial Committee” substitute “ Supreme Court ”.
(5)In the heading before paragraph 28 (appeals from Court of Appeal to Judicial Committee) for “Judicial Committee” substitute “ Supreme Court ”.
(6)In paragraph 28—
(a)for “Judicial Committee” in each place substitute “ Supreme Court ”;
(b)for “leave” in the first two places substitute “ permission ”;
(c)for “special leave” substitute “ permission ”.
Prospective
92(1)Part 5 of Schedule 8 (devolution issues: general) is amended as follows.
(2)Omit paragraph 29 (proceedings in the House of Lords) and the heading before it.
(3)In the heading before paragraph 30 (direct references to Judicial Committee) for “Judicial Committee” substitute “ Supreme Court ”.
(4)In paragraph 30 (law officer requiring court or Assembly to refer devolution issue), in sub-paragraph (1) for “Judicial Committee” substitute “ Supreme Court ”.
(5)In paragraph 31 (Attorney General or Assembly referring devolution issue), in sub-paragraph (1) for “Judicial Committee” substitute “ Supreme Court ”.
(6)Omit paragraphs 32 to 34 (proceedings before the Judicial Committee) and the heading before paragraph 32.
Scotland Act 1998 (c. 46)U.K.
93U.K.The Scotland Act 1998 is amended as follows.
94U.K.In section 15 (disqualification from membership of the Parliament) in subsection (1) omit paragraph (c).
95U.K.In section 32 (submission of Bills for Royal Assent)—
(a)in subsection (2)(b) for “Judicial Committee” substitute “ Supreme Court ”;
(b)in subsection (3)(a) for “Judicial Committee have” substitute “ Supreme Court has ”;
(c)in subsection (4) omit the definition of “Judicial Committee”.
96(1)In the sidenote to section 33 (scrutiny of Bills by the Judicial Committee) for “Judicial Committee” substitute “ Supreme Court ”.U.K.
(2)In subsection (1) of that section for “Judicial Committee” substitute “ Supreme Court ”.
97U.K.In section 34 (ECJ references), in subsection (1)(b) for “Judicial Committee” substitute “ Supreme Court ”.
98U.K.In section 35 (power of Secretary of State to intervene in certain cases), in subsection (3)(c) for “Judicial Committee” substitute “ Supreme Court ”.
99U.K.In section 36 (stages of Bills), in subsection (4) for “Judicial Committee decide” substitute “ Supreme Court decides ”.
100U.K.In section 95 (appointment and removal of judges)—
(a)for subsection (9)(b) substitute—
“(b)for the appointment to chair the tribunal of a member of the Judicial Committee of the Privy Council who holds or has held high judicial office,”;
(b)in subsection (11), before the definition of “provision” insert—
““high judicial office” has the meaning given by section 60 of the Constitutional Reform Act 2005,”.
101U.K.Omit section 103 (proceedings before the Judicial Committee).
102U.K.In section 127 (index of defined expressions) omit the entry for “Judicial Committee”.
103(1)Part 2 of Schedule 6 (proceedings in Scotland on devolution issues) is amended as follows.U.K.
(2)In paragraph 7 (references to Inner House of Court of Session) for “House of Lords” substitute “ Supreme Court ”.
(3)In the heading before paragraph 10 (references from superior courts to Judicial Committee) for “Judicial Committee” substitute “ Supreme Court ”.
(4)In paragraph 10 (references from Court of Session) for “Judicial Committee” substitute “ Supreme Court ”.
(5)In paragraph 11 (references from High Court of Justiciary) for “Judicial Committee” substitute “ Supreme Court ”.
(6)In the heading before paragraph 12 (appeals from superior courts to Judicial Committee) for “Judicial Committee” substitute “ Supreme Court ”.
(7)In paragraph 12 (appeal from Inner House of Court of Session) for “Judicial Committee” substitute “ Supreme Court ”.
(8)In paragraph 13 (other appeals from superior courts)—
(a)for “House of Lords” substitute “ Supreme Court apart from this paragraph ”;
(b)for “Judicial Committee” in each place substitute “ Supreme Court ”;
(c)for “leave” in the first two places substitute “ permission ”;
(d)for “concerned” substitute “ from which the appeal lies ”;
(e)for “special leave” substitute “ permission ”.
104(1)Part 3 of Schedule 6 (proceedings in England and Wales on devolution issues) is amended as follows.U.K.
(2)In paragraph 19 (reference in civil proceedings), in sub-paragraph (2)(a) for “House of Lords” substitute “ Supreme Court ”.
(3)In paragraph 21 (reference in criminal proceedings), for “House of Lords” substitute “ Supreme Court ”.
(4)In the heading before paragraph 22 (references from Court of Appeal to Judicial Committee), for “Judicial Committee” substitute “ Supreme Court ”.
(5)In paragraph 22, for “Judicial Committee” substitute “ Supreme Court ”.
(6)In the heading before paragraph 23 (appeals from superior courts to Judicial Committee) for “Judicial Committee” substitute “ Supreme Court ”.
(7)In paragraph 23—
(a)for “Judicial Committee” in each place substitute “ Supreme Court ”;
(b)for “leave” in the first two places substitute “ permission ”;
(c)for “special leave” substitute “ permission ”.
105(1)Part 4 of Schedule 6 (proceedings in Northern Ireland on devolution issues) is amended as follows.U.K.
(2)In paragraph 28 (reference to Court of Appeal) for “House of Lords” substitute “ Supreme Court ”.
(3)In the heading before paragraph 30 (references from Court of Appeal to Judicial Committee) for “Judicial Committee” substitute “ Supreme Court ”.
(4)In paragraph 30 for “Judicial Committee” substitute “ Supreme Court ”.
(5)In the heading before paragraph 31 (appeals from Court of Appeal to Judicial Committee) for “Judicial Committee” substitute “ Supreme Court ”.
(6)In paragraph 31—
(a)for “Judicial Committee” in each place substitute “ Supreme Court ”;
(b)for “leave” in the first two places substitute “ permission ”;
(c)for “special leave” substitute “ permission ”.
106(1)Part 5 of Schedule 6 (devolution issues: general) is amended as follows.U.K.
(2)Omit paragraph 32 (proceedings in the House of Lords) and the heading before it.
(3)In the heading before paragraph 33 (direct references to Judicial Committee) for “Judicial Committee” substitute “ Supreme Court ”.
(4)In paragraph 33 (law officer requiring court to refer devolution issue) for “Judicial Committee” substitute “ Supreme Court ”.
(5)In paragraph 34 (law officer referring devolution issues) for “Judicial Committee” substitute “ Supreme Court ”.
107U.K.In Schedule 7 (procedure for subordinate legislation), in the table under paragraph 1(2) omit the entry relating to section 103(3)(a) and (b).
Northern Ireland Act 1998 (c. 47)U.K.
108U.K.The Northern Ireland Act 1998 is amended as follows.
109(1)In the sidenote to section 11 (scrutiny of Bills by the Judicial Committee) for “Judicial Committee” substitute “ Supreme Court ”.U.K.
(2)In subsection (1) of that section for “Judicial Committee” substitute “ Supreme Court ”.
(3)In subsection (4) of that section—
(a)for “Judicial Committee decide” substitute “ Supreme Court decides ”;
(b)for “their decision” substitute “ its decision ”.
110U.K.In section 12 (reconsideration where reference made to ECJ), in subsection (1)(b) for “Judicial Committee” substitute “ Supreme Court ”.
111U.K.In section 13 (stages of Bills), in subsection (5)(a) for “Judicial Committee decide” substitute “ Supreme Court decides ”.
112U.K.In section 14 (submission by Secretary of State of Bills for Royal Assent)—
(a)in subsection (2)(b) for “Judicial Committee” substitute “ Supreme Court ”;
(b)in subsection (3)(a) for “Judicial Committee have” substitute “ Supreme Court has ”.
113U.K.Omit section 82 (proceedings before the Judicial Committee).
114U.K.In section 98 (interpretation), in subsection (1) omit the entry for “Judicial Committee”.
115(1)Part 2 of Schedule 10 (proceedings in Northern Ireland on devolution issues) is amended as follows.U.K.
(2)In paragraph 7 (reference to Court of Appeal) for “House of Lords” substitute “ Supreme Court ”.
(3)In the heading before paragraph 9 (references from Court of Appeal to Judicial Committee) for “Judicial Committee” substitute “ Supreme Court ”.
(4)In paragraph 9 for “Judicial Committee” substitute “ Supreme Court ”.
(5)In the heading before paragraph 10 (appeals from Court of Appeal to Judicial Committee) for “Judicial Committee” substitute “ Supreme Court ”.
(6)In paragraph 10—
(a)for “Judicial Committee” in each place substitute “ Supreme Court ”;
(b)for “leave” in the first two places substitute “ permission ”;
(c)for “special leave” substitute “ permission ”.
116(1)Part 3 of Schedule 10 (proceedings in England and Wales on devolution issues) is amended as follows.U.K.
(2)In paragraph 16 (reference in civil proceedings), in sub-paragraph (2)(a) for “House of Lords” substitute “ Supreme Court ”.
(3)In paragraph 18 (reference in criminal proceedings) for “House of Lords” substitute “ Supreme Court ”.
(4)In the heading before paragraph 19 (references from Court of Appeal to Judicial Committee) for “Judicial Committee” substitute “ Supreme Court ”.
(5)In paragraph 19 for “Judicial Committee” substitute “ Supreme Court ”.
(6)In the heading before paragraph 20 (appeals from superior courts to Judicial Committee) for “Judicial Committee” substitute “ Supreme Court ”.
(7)In paragraph 20—
(a)for “Judicial Committee” in each place substitute “ Supreme Court ”;
(b)for “leave” in the first two places substitute “ permission ”;
(c)for “special leave” substitute “ permission ”.
117(1)Part 4 of Schedule 10 (proceedings in Scotland on devolution issues) is amended as follows.U.K.
(2)In paragraph 25 (references to Inner House of Court of Session) for “House of Lords” substitute “ Supreme Court ”.
(3)In the heading before paragraph 28 (references from superior courts to Judicial Committee) for “Judicial Committee” substitute “ Supreme Court ”.
(4)In paragraph 28 (references from Court of Session) for “Judicial Committee” substitute “ Supreme Court ”.
(5)In paragraph 29 (references from High Court of Justiciary) for “Judicial Committee” substitute “ Supreme Court ”.
(6)In the heading before paragraph 30 (appeals from superior courts to Judicial Committee) for “Judicial Committee” substitute “ Supreme Court ”.
(7)In paragraph 30 (appeal from Inner House of Court of Session) for “Judicial Committee” substitute “ Supreme Court ”.
(8)In paragraph 31 (appeal from other superior courts)—
(a)for “House of Lords” substitute “ Supreme Court apart from this paragraph ”;
(b)for “Judicial Committee” in each place substitute “ Supreme Court ”;
(c)for “leave” in the first two places substitute “ permission ”;
(d)for “special leave” substitute “ permission ”.
118(1)Part 5 of Schedule 10 (devolution issues: general) is amended as follows.U.K.
(2)Omit paragraph 32 (proceedings in the House of Lords) and the heading before it.
(3)In the heading before paragraph 33 (direct references to the Judicial Committee) for “Judicial Committee” substitute “ Supreme Court ”.
(4)In paragraph 33 (law officers etc requiring court to refer devolution issue) for “Judicial Committee” substitute “ Supreme Court ”.
(5)In paragraph 34 (law officers etc referring devolution issue) for “Judicial Committee” substitute “ Supreme Court ”.
(6)In paragraph 39 (bail and legal aid in criminal proceedings), in sub-paragraphs (2) to (4)—
(a)for “Court” in each place substitute “ Court of Appeal ”;
(b)for “Judicial Committee” and “Committee” substitute “ Supreme Court ”.
119U.K.In paragraph 40 (application of paragraph 39 in particular circumstances), in sub-paragraphs (a) and (b)—
(a)for “Judicial Committee” and “Committee” in each place substitute “ Supreme Court ”;
(b)for “Court” substitute “ Court of Appeal ”.